118 9 15MB
English Pages 264 [270] Year 2003
-»^i
r
MILES HORDERN
Saili
tfi aciric A VOYAGE ACROSS THE LONGEST/
STRETCH OF WATER ON EARTH,
AND A JOURNEY INTO ITS PAST
— $24.95 /$36.95 can.
ISBN 0-312-31081-1
SAILORS ARE GENERALLY
SOLO to
KNOWN
be a breed apart, and here's an
unforgettable book that shows just
how wide selves
a berth they give them-
from the crowds. Several years
ago,
Miles Hordern, a schoolteacher by training
though he had run away to sea a few times before
— set
sail
on a twenty-eight-foot boat
from New Zealand
to
South America, the
largest uninterrupted stretch of water on
and the dominion of icebergs, cyclones,
earth,
and swells of monumental proportions. The
would take him through the
trip
fjords of
Patagonia, one of the last uncharted areas in the world, then
north on the Peru Current
before he began his
homeward voyage.
Sailing the Pacific recounts that trip in
prose so vivid you can
feel the
spray sting
your face and the deck heave beneath your
Here
feet.
back
is
hawser-taut prose that takes you
Conrad, Melville, and Poe, indeed
to
to all those writers
whose works about the
bounding main have launched countless imaginations.
Hordern pauses
who have gone
to consider those
before him, recounting the
stories that have given life to this lonely
and magisterial part of the world. Writers, adventurers, fictional characters, cartographers,
doomed voyages from history's pages
from the whaleship
S.S.
Essex to the
Bounty, the South Pacific drew them in their
way they
left their
mark on
HMS
all,
and
its
vast
surface.
Part sailing yarn, part adventure story,
part
homage
to
an unending but beckoning
horizon, Sailing the Pacific will appeal to the sailor in each
one of
us.
sailing the pacific
sailing the
pacific A VOYAGE ACROSS THE LONGEST STRETCH OF WATER ON EARTH,
AND
A JOURNEY INTO ITS PAST
MILES
ST.
MARTIN
HORDERN
S
PRESS
W
NEW YORK
SAILING THE PACIFIC. Copyright
©
2002 by Miles Hordern.
No
Printed in the United States of America.
part of this
All rights reserved.
book may be used or
reproduced in any manner whatsoever without written permission except in the case of brief quotations
address
St.
embodied
in critical articles or reviews.
Martin's Press, 175 Fifth Avenue,
New York,
For information,
N.Y. 10010.
www.stmartins.com
ISBN 0-312-31081-1 First
published in Great Britain by John Murray (Publishers) Ltd.,
under the First
10
title
US. 9
8
Voyaging the
Edition:
7
6
5
Pacific.
March 2003 4
3
2
1
In
memory of Lucy
Illustrations
(between pages 148 and 149) 1.
Bill Peers
2.
After the
wreck
at
Contisplage
3
Our
4.
Abraham
5.
Palajito
6.
Approaching the Canal Refugio
7.
Icebergs in the
castaway
camp
at
Contisplage
Ortelius' world map, Theatrum OrbisTerrarum, 1570
houses, Castro,
Chiloe
Isla
Rio Tempanos
8.
Recrossing the Canal Moraleda
9.
Juan Fernandez
1 1
The church at Akamaru The altar at the cathedral,
12.
Taravai,
13.
Tahiti
10.
Rikitea
Gambier
14.
Tied to the wharf, Papeete
15.
Wreck of the Nicky
16.
Pete Atkinson
The author and
publisher
Lou, Beveridge
would
reproduce
illustrations: Plate 4,
11, 13, 15
and 16
by the author.
©
like to
thank the following for permission to
courtesy of the
Pete Atkinson.
Reef
New York
Public Library; 10,
The remaining photographs were
taken
J0°
the south
North
_______ *a
fS
_E_
SOU>MOS
•'^.
ISLANDS
FUNAFUTI
vMoCQW
J
SarR WALUS* ^SAMOA li_£S
VANUATuVi o
NEW
fvpOREA FIJI
Beveridge.
CALEDONl^*
ATA*
Southern COOK ISLANDS
xSbf>hUESAS
JAMOTU >CHlPELAGO JI0?~-
HENt>ERSON
TCMRN*
EASTER
AREA OF
ISLAdeCHILOEJ] »>|
ENLARftEMENT
f20°
_J_
I
OCT
g0°
CAPE^ MORN
sailing the pacific
Prologue
An ordinary, quiet night at sea. No waves beat against the hull. No spray peppered the sky. The ocean rose and fell stiffly, the con-
A
powdery wake spread behind the boat. There was a dryness to the silence. A breeze from the Colombian coast rippled the water, but was barely strong enough to heel the yacht. Thin cloud veiled the heavens, faintly back-lit by a quarter moon. sistency
I
sat
of
down on
beyond the still
ash.
the cockpit bench, rubbing
coastline
my
and dressed only in boxer
hot. I'd spent the previous
week
eyes.
shorts,
I
was
but
it
far
was
trying to escape the fickle
winds of the Gulf of Panama. Drifting on the calms, clumps of
and dead branches floated beside the boat. Ships passed
grass
times, steaming to
Panama Canal. was It
tired.
was
I
and from Balboa and the
Light, shifty
didn't
first
winds had dogged
know how many
a familiar routine: I'd
times
I'd
me
at
locks of the all
woken
the way.
I
that night.
climb leadenly to the cockpit, scan
the horizon for ships, and return gratefully to bed.
I
followed
my
body through the process, an unconscious accomplice. Standing on deck at night was little different from the oblivion of sleep.
Time was beginning I
line
sat a
to blur.
while longer in the cockpit.
between water and
many
years before.
I
sky,
The horizon was
a
chalky
smudged and faded as if drawn in its length one more time.
checked around
Sailing the Pacific
There was nothing
there.
ous balance might be
down
climbed cautiously back
I
the cabin, wary even of shifting
my
Then
lost.
I
weight for
into
fear the precari-
on the bunk and
lay lightly
while the boat ghosted south-west, out into the empty
slept
Pacific. It
was probably only
woke
saw the
I
a short
of
clear lights
There had been many
time
on many
ships
but the next time
later,
a ship
on the
I
eastern horizon.
nights, comfortless inter-
ruptions, engines grinding into the distance. I've never forgot-
on
ten those lights
coming straight
at
There was something odd
that night, though.
about them from the
start.
They were high
and
up, very bright,
me. There was no engine noise. Then the ship
altered course, heading to pass
behind
my
But
boat.
it
got
little
moving only very slowly towards me, being strangely Why was it taking so long? I turned on the radio in
closer,
attentive.
case there
The
was
a
problem.
ship closed
be following me. taken
them
me
on
No
one
for just
called.
under an hour.
read stories of acts of piracy
I'd
seriously.
Now
I
looked
shorts fluttering in a rising breeze, a
nearby. This was a
down
pulled a sheet over
my
at sea,
but never
my
myself,
to
boxer
I'd
never
felt
threat-
at sea before.
Finally the lights passed close across
were disappointed, or
seemed
few white horses tumbling
new sort of vulnerability:
ened by human beings
at
It
relieved.
I
my wake. wondered if I
I
climbed into the bunk and
What happened next was like the 1984 when Big Brother's voice comes
head.
scene in George Orwell's
out of the painting. Vessel
on
my port
bow, vessel on
my port
bow, this
is
United States
warship. I
sat
bolt upright.
Vessel
on
my
I'd
forgotten to turn off the radio.
port bow, vessel on
my port
bow, this
is
United States
warship. I
jumped up and went back
altered course again
and was
to the cockpit.
now
steaming
The
parallel to
ship
my
had
boat.
Miles Hordern
I
shadow of its outline
tried to find the
the ship was very unclear, except for Sailing vessel
Navy.
Do
on
my The
port bow, this
you copy?
is
against the horizon, but
navigation
its
lights.
a warship of the United States
voice was sharp and clipped, fuelled with
the authority of sitting atop thousands of tons of steel.
I
wondered
what he saw when he looked down from his banks of screens and keyboards towards me: through the pale green twilight of the
could he see me, half-naked, staring back from the
ship's bridge,
dark waters of the ocean? chart table, picked Sir, this vessel is
American I
gave
waters.
I
stepped over the bridge-deck to the
up the microphone and answered the
call.
part of an international patrol operating in Central
What
your
is
vessel's
name and port of Registry?
them both.
How many persons
are there
on board,
sir?
'One.'
What was your
last port,
please?
'Panama.'
Where
are
you bound?
'French Polynesia.'
How many
days at sea, sir?
'Six.'
ETA
in
French Polynesia?
'Four weeks,
Are you
maybe
five.'
carrying illegal narcotics?
'No.'
Are
there
any firearms on
the boat, sir?
'No.' Sir, I
Ym
requesting your permission to send over a boarding party.
paused
a
moment
thing. Boardings cut
sacrosanct
knew I'd
it
hoped
The
sailors
I
knew
hated
this sort
of
deep into the notion of sovereignty that was
yachts.
wouldn't
always
end up
on
here.
last.
I
felt a
knee-jerk obligation to
but
This was just the kind of alien visitation
to experience at sea.
a little longer.
resist,
Still,
I
thought
I'd
keep
my
Sailing the Pacific
'Am Yes,
in international waters?'
I
Sir,
sir.
I have advance authority
from your embassy
Wash-
in
ington to board vessels sailing under the British flag.
name of your
'What's the
tified
ship?'
I cannot give you that information at the present time. I have iden-
Sir,
myself as a United States warship. I have a coastguard unit stand-
ing by to board you. I
my
was growing into
A
oceans.
role as
David
dead night had come to
worried about
pirates.
They needed
to this Goliath of the
told the ship I'd
been
to identify themselves
more
life. I
clearly.
we
Sir,
will fly a
US flag from
and illuminate
the bridge
it
with a
spotlight.
They
did
this.
I
saw the
Stars
and Stripes high up
in the sky,
rich reds and blues against the colourless wastes of the night sky.
Behind
it
were
fragment of superstructure and a cluster of
a
aerials.
But I could see nothing more of the
happy.
Anyone can buy
a flag.
I
Stand by
please,
Only
few seconds passed.
a
wanted
ship.
I
said
I still
wasn't
to wait until daylight.
sir.
looked
I
around the
carelessly
cabin, past shelves of books, nets of vegetables, soot stains above
the cooker. Then, with a sudden flash, I
appeared to be daytime.
it
scrambled, breathless, back onto the deck.
white, the sky blinding.
bloody great naval lit
up the
ship
ship.
from stem
A
The
sea
was molten
hundred metres away there was
They'd turned on to stern,
all
their
deck
it
my boat. went back to I
lights,
hundreds of thousands of watts
cutting into the night. Three powerful spotlights blazed
onto
a
the radio.
I
tried to
down
make a joke of
and muttered something about, 'Under the circumstances
.' .
.
There was no hint of humour, nor any smugness. Just the same monotone drawl: Yes, sir. The boarding party is on its way. It
took
single spot
a
long time. The deck still
lights
played onto the boat.
consciously sipping
it
on deck.
I
Finally a
were turned
made
tea
off,
and
but
a
sat self-
second spotlight picked
Miles Hordern
out a large inflatable leaving the ship and heading
on board,
were
five figures
their
arms around each
the boat
slammed
sitting astride a central seat.
There
They had
and lurched in unison
other's waists
into the small waves.
As they drew
me through a megaphone.
robotic voice reached
my way.
as
closer a
'Are-there-any-
weapons-on-the-boat?' 'No.'
'You-are-not-armed-sir?' I
stood there in
my
underwear,
my
bare skin glowing in the
fierce spotlight.
'No, for Christ's sake!'
The launch fell heavily neath the surge of its
comb
of
barrel
off the plane and slopped alongside be-
own wash. saw the black steel and honeyI
machine-gun slung beneath an arm.
a small
the cockpit.
He
rubbery black
flak
squat
man climbed over the rail and stepped into
wore
a
heavy moustache, fawn
He
jacket with stub collar. radio
on the
'Evening,
sir.
aboard?'
hand-gun on one hip and
Coastguards,
Hough of the United States Coastpatrol. Our mission is narcotics. Permission for my men to
Hough turned back to
let's
see
you on
They shed
their
was
US
deck.'
the launch.
Three burly
Coastguard baseball caps, then their
starched and neatly pressed.
'Evening,
figures piled ox-
and we stacked them on the coach-roof.
I
I'd
already
legs filled the small cockpit,
knees contorted for want of space. Their
down
'Hubba-hubba
hot night and they were sweating
a
been deemed harmless. Ten bare
shorn
a
of an international
like into the cockpit. It
flak jackets,
a
a
Lieutenant as part
to curb the trade in illegal
hard.
had
and
other.
guard operating
come
fatigues,
A
shirts
our
and shorts were
smelt aftershave. Their hair was
to stubble. Their cheeks
were pink and scrubbed.
sir.'
'Captain.' 'Sir',
and they each
their chests identified
stole a glance in
them
as
my
direction.
Badges on
Mitchley, Rosenthal and Randall.
Sailing the Pacific
Lieutenant
my men
Hough
said, 'Captain,
requesting permission for
sir,
to search the boat.'
Rosenthal and Randall went
down
into the cabin. Mitchley
stayed with us in the cockpit. Lieutenant
form. 'Mind
if
I
ask
length of the boat,
you
a
Hough
pulled out a
few questions, Captain? What's the
sir?
'And the beam? 'Draft, sir?
'Tonnage? 'Engine
size?
'Engine make? 'Fuel capacity?'
Mitchley began vomiting.
Hough muttered been here
darkly, 'Christsake Coastguard,
Go do
five minutes.
we've only
that in the launch. You're dis-
Hough summoned the launch on the radio and Mitchley moved uncertainly away. The lieutenant turned back to me. 'Apologies, Captain. Goddam rookies, all of them. So the fuel missed.'
capacity was
.
.
.?
'Number of masts? 'Number of sails, sir? 'Water capacity?
'And how much food you got on the boat - approximately?' told
I
him
I
had enough for
six
months.
The professionalism slipped for just a moment. Coastguard Hough stared back at me, his pen poised above the pad: 'Six goddam months? You're kidding! You gonna be out here alone for six months?' 'I
hope
not.
It's
just in case.'
Hough looked past me the
companionway
figures
along the deck of the yacht, then
into the cabin,
of Rosenthal and Randall.
which was almost 'So,'
and he wrote the words on the page. a
few more questions.
I
he
We
said, 'six
filled
months,
down by the then,'
finished the form, only
asked the lieutenant
if
he would
like a
Miles Hordern
cup of
coffee.
Hough
went down
I
my
shouted over
into the cabin to light the stove.
down
head, 'You guys nearly done
The coastguards weren't having an easy time. Every crammed to bursting. Whenever they opened a door
there?'
locker was
the contents tumbled out:
tins, jars,
packets of pasta, dried beans,
root vegetables. Searching a boat at sea was an impossible task.
They knew
this.
was just one more for the log-book.
I
They looked
they wanted a drink too.
nodded
Hough
to
I
asked
if
then
first,
that they did.
We sat in the cockpit. The wind had fallen light again and the boat was barely making way. If the wind to take in the
and
sails
drift.
was glad they'd seen
I
way, one of the ordinary, quiet nights
They were yachts.
in
Hough
no hurry
said
it
further
fell
to leave.
I
still
my
I'd
need
life this
at sea.
asked
if
they boarded
many
'And
if you
was mostly small fishing
find that they are carrying narcotics,'
boats.
asked, 'where are they
I
headed?' 'Usually to a ship offshore.
West
Some go
direct to
Mexico or
the
Coast.'
Randall asked me, 'So where 're you outa anyway, Captain?' 'I'm sorry?'
'Where 're you I
You know — where
that near the sea,
you from,
sir?'
said
it
wasn't,
and
sir?'
that
he should
'You always been interested in Lieutenant
Hough
ship over there.
need any know.
said, 'Say,
Workshop,
have them bring
Randall was looking say.
at
it I
Captain, you
I
your boat, just
had everything
me
know we got a big it, we got it. You
you name
over in the launch.'
again.
'You know, Captain,
this bitty boat.
Miles. Miles?'
sir,
fuel, water, stores, spare parts for
I'll
thing to
me
call
sailing,
hospital;
Lieutenant Hough, but said
on
are
told him.
'Is I
outa?
sir, I
He
I
I
let
me
thanked
needed.
obviously had some-
don't get
mean, no offence, but,
like
You all alone - what the hell
it.
Sailing the Pacific
you doing out
are
forgotten that
here?' I'd forgotten
might need
I
kind of an adventure,
it's
many
'In
'Not
storms.
They
many
you
as
how
to
answer
so soon. Randall said,
this. I'd
mean,
'I
right?'
ways.'
of bad storms,
'Lots
The
to,
as
I
guess.'
always wanted to think,'
know
about the storms.
said.
I
'Don't you get lonely?'
'Not
really'
'But you gotta miss seeing other people?'
them when I get to land. It doesn't take so long.' RandaU still wasn't satisfied. 'I suppose so. But it's not the same, is it? I mean, you gotta miss having people around. You 'I
see
know,
close to
you.
What about women? Jeez,
I
couldn't do that.
You gotta miss women, Captain — the touch of a woman's soft body next to yours at night-time.' He paused for a moment. Then he gave me a sly look and leaned closer. 'Or maybe you prefer something different?'
Lieutenant guard.
You
Hough looked
stop right there. You're
'Hey, take
it
the guy, offered
him any
him while we're
Hough has
sir,
asking
from the
if there's
I'm just
ship.
anything
bit for
I
can do
here.'
rose abruptly to his feet. 'Christsakes, Coastguard, this
gone too
flak jackets,
We
way outa line.' You did your
stores or spares
Our mission
far.
here
to the ship. Prepare to disembark.'
guns.
enough, Coast-
easy Lieutenant, will you?
following your example, for
appalled. 'That's
and
is I
completed. We're returning
helped them back into their
to find their baseball caps, radios
gathered on the side-deck
Lieutenant
as
and machine-
the launch approached.
Hough said, 'Thank you for your co-operation Good luck on your voyage. Hope you find, you
tonight, Captain.
know, whatever.' They climbed into the launch and central seat.
Hough may
even have given
a
sat astride
prod with the
then they galloped off over the swells and into the night.
the
spurs,
One
My boat was boarded by the US had told Lieutenant Hough, French Polynesia.
I
Coastguard in
1
991.
As
I
was on passage from Panama to
turned out to be
It
May
long and slow
a
trip, first
through the equatorial doldrums, then running before patchy south-east trade winds to the Marquesas.
I
spent the next eight-
een months following the wind and other boats between the
shores of
home
By
of Polynesia.
islands
late
New Zealand.
in England.
I
1992
was
It
needed
had reached the northern
I
now two years
to stop
since
and work.
I
had
I
left
my
was twenty-six
years old. I
lived
Then
I
on the boat
moved
into a
removed from the weekends we beach.
When
sea.
Auckland harbour
in
flat I
ashore. Gradually
had colleagues, then
sailed to islands in the
they asked
me
my
voyage to
New
sea,
my
winter.
first life
made
I
Gulf and
about the
called the 'Coastguard Anecdote'.
about
for the
became
friends.
ate picnics
I
told
what
At
on the I
now
There were other anecdotes
Zealand, too:
my
life as
a
sometime
teacher in island schools, the strange companionship of the circle
of single-handed
sailors
about the sea were
and the occasional
were easy
I
found myself
traveller's tales, filled
farce
to describe.
a part of.
I
stories
with people and events,
of voyaging under
My friends and
My
sail.
These things
shared the same terms of
Sailing the Pacific
reference.
These were
but not
stories on the sea, or by the sea,
stories of the sea.
What was
I
could never
of
a description
tailor to fit the confines
place without people or events: a place
a
where the landscape was not simply
my human body is water. suspended in
I
my
journey on land. But in even begin to explain
this.
which had moved me.
I
I
I
my
told
of the voyage. and the
life
I
nine months of my
anecdotes
I
is
not the same
never found
that
by, the
recre-
handful of anecdotes that
I
had
tried to picture the sea, the water itself
I
had led on
it, I
could conjure in
my mind
details, like
only the
the earliest
On the wall of my room in New Zealand there was a map. of the Castiglione map, the
first
drawn by Diego Ribeiro
the Pacific Ocean,
mem-
recently completed the
would
take three
Islands; instead
leather.
it
first
weeks
s
was
in 1529. Ribeiro
who
had
circumnavigation. Magellan believed
to cross the Pacific
took four months, while
Ribeiro
It
European map of
based his work on reports by Magellan's survivors,
and
to
at sea
of childhood.
a small print
it
life
as a
way
no form of words could
became almost the only memories
When
a
could not describe the things
most simple impressions or routine ories
first
over water
As the years went
friends
backdrop. Seven-tenths of
believed that the sea existed only in the
moment that one lived there; ate the formless.
a
spent the
A journey
fluid.
of an anecdote
map shows
and reach the Spice
his
crew
ate
sawdust
the Pacific as endless, fading off
the sheet and into emptiness, as if the cartographer did not really
know what
On is
do with
it.
my window was a copy of another work wooden globe carved by Ruth Watson. 'The
the other side of
oi art.
Soul
to
I
his
was
a
the Prison of the Body' was inspired by Martin Waldsee-
innller's
grain oi
wooden globe, made in 507. Waldseemiiller used the the wood to portray waxes on the oceans; in Watson's 1
10
Miles Hordern
work
the grain forms a huge fingerprint, representing the rotat-
ing flow of winds and currents around the ocean.
My desk was beneath this window and when
evening
I
often
home from work. The
got
house was sunnier
I
time of day, with
at this
my bedroom suburban
had spent alone
I
window, because
street, rather steep,
it
at sea,
other side of the
view over
a
wild gardens and barely another building in because of the time
preferred sitting at
looked out onto an ordinary
descending from
left
to right. Kids
trundled past on in-line skates, then toiled back up the
another run.
was while
It
several
But, perhaps
sight. I
here in the
sat
sitting at
my
hill
for
desk, watching the street
scene between these two representations of the Pacific, Ribeiro chart and Watson's meteorological fingerprint, that
I
began
s
to
plan a second voyage. I
had been living
my
home.
other
was
It
case for
a start,
my
back to
fingerprint,
I
this
I
New
more
a
home
Pacific
for five years,
now
and had come to
thought of the South Pacific
—
did not have two years I
as
had found me, rather than the
that
voyage would be different in
thought
I
I
a
number
had been the
as
could afford
importantly, this time
point of departure.
The South by
I
my previous voyage.
the most. But,
ing to sailed
Auckland
home
a
way around. So
of ways. For
at
in
over that time that
realise
six
months
would be returnthat before -
had never done
I
port.
weather system
is
indeed
a little like a
winds and currents rotating anti-clockwise enclosed
Zealand, Antarctica, South America and the equator.
thought that in
six
months
I
could complete
a
circuit
of
the South Pacific by taking the westerlies across the Southern
Ocean
to the coast
to the tropics,
of Chile, following the Peru Current north
and then returning with the south-east trade winds
through the Polynesian islands. Looking through my bedroom window at the children playing in the street outside, believed could jump on the back of the Pacific weather system, the most powerful thing on Earth, ride it round my own back yard for I
!
I
I
Sailing the Pacific
home
the summer, and then be carried back
and
before
it
got dark
cold.
Over
the years
often, but
had lived in Auckland
I
timental relationship from the beginning.
perhaps conventional love with
mooring
I
had
sailed
my
boat
made few changes. That boat and I have had an unsen-
my
vessel the
against a
and so on. In
I
cannot write,
point of a sea narrative, that
at this
day
I
first
saw
I
as is
fell
in
her, pulling gently at her
backdrop of weeping willows and bulrushes,
fact,
I
bought the boat
in Bradwell
Marina, just
The previous owner was a Once the deal was clinched he
next to the nuclear power station. local Essex property developer.
told
me
he thought the boat hopelessly small and old-fashioned,
then drove off in a mauve Rolls-Royce.
The boat
bought
I
designed in 1963 by
do so much: with the
I
my
about yachts.
little
liked the
I
that could
marriage of the small Edwardian offshore yacht
a
of the synthetic
utility
of
knew
had never seen something so simple
the perfect machine in in search
twenty-year-old Twister,
a
I
boats since childhood, but
Twister because
was
that day
Kim Holman. had sailed dinghies and day-
which
a place to live.
I
age.
to
I
guessed that
make my way
would be
this
across the
ocean
have never been disappointed with
choice.
The timing to leave
for this
Auckland
second voyage would be
in the late spring,
passage across the Southern
December.
I
would spend
making the
I
planned
high-latitude
November and southern summer cruising in
Ocean the
tight.
to Chile in
Patagonia, then re-cross the Pacific in the tropics in the autumn,
by which time the
risk
of a cyclone would be reduced.
I
antici-
Ocean than I had on winter months before I
pated meeting heavier seas in the Southern
New
my
trip to
left
Auckland
I
Zealand, and over the
made
a
few
alterations to the boat, beefing
up the
hatches, bolting a sheet of polycarbonate over each of the six
cabin
windows
to reinforce the original glass, fitting
made bronze gudgeons on
custom-
the rudder, putting up heavy rigging,
12
Miles Hordern
ordering new sails. As the I
started to shed the skins
my job. Then
and quit to
make
it
I
tried to
my
of
ashore.
life
started to say
my
got rid of
I
goodbye
to friends.
I
car
tried
beginning on the outside with those
now and
saw only
people I
I
November departure date drew closer,
a clinical process,
walk.
again.
We met for a drink,
be matter-of-fact, businesslike.
or took a
wanted no emo-
I
baggage on the boat. But with each parting the enormity
tional
of the ocean came
a little closer.
A week before
I
left
someone
I
had met on the passage out
friends, I
i
admired him,
received a letter from one of my sailing
I
seaman, more than anyone
as a
wrote what was obviously he believed
to
New Zealand.
else
I
knew.
a carefully considered letter.
He
He said
my boat to be too small for such a passage, but susmy abilities. He argued that I
pected that he was also questioning it
was
hope
unrealistic to
months.
He
to
sail
so
an alternative, that
should
I
him — we could do some
sail
before
to the nursery at
the
diving.
left, I
I
and bought
soil
filtered sunlight.
I
I
up
I
as
to the tropics to join
was hurt by
his letter at the
had shrugged
down
young kowhai
it off.
to the boat;
tree,
which
I
I
went
planted
spent the rest of the day weeding
beneath the tree-ferns, bathing in the green-
wanted
to
cram
the land, then feed off it over the
Preparing
I
did not go a
bottom of our garden.
and turning the
exercise.
in a small boat, in only six
direct
time, but tried to persuade myself
The day
far,
was an underwater photographer: he suggested,
a
my
head with
weeks ahead.
boat for the sea
is
It
There
easy.
this
image of
was
a
is
hollow
nothing you
can do to prepare yourself.
On
the
last
evening
my
house-mates drove
boat with their two-year-old son, Ben.
Everything was
his size.
He jumped around
dens beneath the cushions.
When
they
pontoon
left,
Ben
to the boat.
I
me down
Ben loved
the bunks and
was
made
tried to chat breezily to his parents.
cried and wanted to run back It
to the
the boat.
a
scene that came back to
times.
13
down the me many
Sailing the Pacific
I
and
left
Auckland
dawn the following morning. It was a warm The waters of the Hauraki Gulf looked green
at
soft spring day.
and furrowed, an extension of the
found
between the
a path
would be
tied
up
at
islands,
home
villages.
when for when
never been to these places,
was one of those days
close. It
themselves
among I
I
could
I
wondered why
five years
had
I
had lived so
I
the land and sea present
one inseparable view, and
as
around.
all
inshore craft that
that evening. In the distance
and lonely
see ruffled headlands
rolling farmland
then
it
was hard to choose
between them. I
passed through Colville Channel, then sailed south of
Cuvier
Island.
There
began
it
to change.
A
longer, slower sea
spread beneath the boat, like a sheet billowing in slow motion.
The
rise
and
as if a great
fall
was measured, smoothly oiled and unstoppable,
engine were working beneath
time being, in the deepest passage in this
way
I
islands before
Ocean was
sleep.
different
had followed
I
could
start.
still
for the
lost,
I
was
had always been
sea.
The Southern
in the city
taste espresso,
I
a
hopped
or
coastline
a
heading onto the open
from the
and the next, when
or the boat were
had never begun an ocean
I
before. In the past there
period of transition:
between
me
of some planetary creature
sailing across the chest
one minute
was
sailing
out
into the blue. I
have never been able to quantify distance properly
knew
that
it
was
five
thousand miles to South America;
myself that the passage should take like
being told
it
I
the city with
left
six
was so many million
the distance was so great that
mind
it
weeks. But
ised
what
a
far distant
human
as a
told
I
was rather
became meaningless, and
no destination other than the
commonplace
could be used
it
I
light years to a far-off star:
For me, the sea represented an empty space. about the history of
at sea.
When
attitudes to the ocean,
belief this was.
The
thoroughfare to connect
a
I
in
my
sea. I
read
had
real-
idea that the sea
home
port with
continents only gained acceptance in the sixteenth
14
Miles Hordern
century, after the voyages of the
Age of Discovery.
Until then,
Europeans often believed the sea to be an alien dimension. Early Mediterranean of the
limits
societies
human
yond the ocean was nite, others that
fire.
it
anything, lay be-
Water
who
claimed that beyond the ocean lay a
itself
was
river divided their
Great Circular Ocean. sea.
if
Some believed that the sea was infi-
clearly
The
the centre of the world, with
on the
which marked the
barrier
world. Exactly what,
unclear.
but the sea was a mystery.
The
as a
voyagers risked falling off the edge of the earth.
There were those burning
saw
world
an essential element of life,
early Egyptians
saw the Nile
rich farmlands
its
in two, then swept
on
either side.
round
The Egyptian world was
Heaven was an island of reeds. Beyond
as
it
in the
a disc floating
that there
was
nothing.
The
ancient Chinese had similar ideas.
that the universe
was
a great sphere
with
The Chinese a
pool of water
bottom. The earth floated on the water. Beyond the
vapour
filled
the
believed
sky,
at
the
water
empty reaches of space.
The good weather did not last. Grey crept over the ocean on the south wind until it coloured everything - the sea, the sky, the clouds; soon it began to colour my mood, too. It is very hard truly to remember a piece of ocean - the shape and texture of the water itself, the sounds, the smell - for more than a few days. That
is
part of
its
mystery.
What
fixes itself
most
easily in
my
memory is the colour of the sea. Colour has the power to transport me back many years, tens of thousands of miles, to a certain stretch
of water on
a certain
day
I
remember the burnished
of dawn in mid Atlantic; emerald pastures piebald mirages
among
in the
silver
Caribbean;
equatorial squalls; that deep, eternal blue
of the Pacific trade winds; turquoise shoaling hundreds of miles
from land; the navy-blue monotony of temperate earlier passages
gales.
On my
colour had changed, bringing character to an
15
Sailing the Pacific
otherwise anonymous ocean. But in the south these separate
had been drained from the water. There was
identities
one
great, grey,
monolithic
could clear
my
into
my
Those
But
The weather was was
it
of touch. The but
still I
into,
and
and obstructive.
shifty this
five years since
fickle
never got I
could get inside the boat,
It
dreams.
about the boat, thinking that stood.
I
wind forced
was
all
had been sail
something
quite right. There was
it
hauled
sails left
I
my sat
my
hands red and
the
sails,
spent
under-
I
was out
to tap
sore.
me raw. Working When warmed I
as
much
it is
Then
time
I
sat
numbly
as
as
in the cockpit, nursing
possible in the cockpit.
back on the sea and create it,
rose
sick.
the easiest place to be.
there watching
wind
shrinking the exposed surface area so
and aching limbs, feeling
a passage
I
no pattern
the kettle, the tips cracked and bled. As the
down
to maintain control.
bruises
bustled
blundered clumsily around the deck in thick boots
the ropes and
I
and
to sea,
I
changes several times a day,
and heavy clothing, while the ocean rubbed
them over
Grey
days of the passage were plagued by setbacks and
first
frustration.
it.
last forever.
such that no wind
a viscosity
no optimism pierce
it,
food, and into
might
sea, that
clung to the ocean world with
just this
I
At the
start
of
had not yet learnt to turn
my own
world in the cabin. So
I
Flocks of shearwaters wheeled
distrustful.
overhead, hundreds of plaintive cries
filling a
cold and
flat sky.
They circled, crazy and disoriented, as if something had gone wrong with whatever drove them. Waves climbed into the sky as the birds dropped vertically towards the water. They appeared indifferent to the boat. Once I saw a pair of humpback whales barging through the swells. Seas broke heavily across their backs
and the wave pattern was cut up
all
around.
the image of an old whaling ship: the
call
I
tried to conjure
rush to lower the boats, the single-minded faces oblivion of the chase.
I
wanted
to
ary characters.
16
fill
up
from the lookout, the at
the oars, the
the emptiness with imagin-
Miles Hordern
After a couple of hours in the cockpit
took cover in the hatchway, with
hood and
I
felt
my view was
stood there for hours.
I
From
and down the
self-steering gear
wake.
boat's
first
woke
I
was
It
tiller
and
easier this
west the view behind the boat was always uphill.
settled in the
more
The
often during the night.
piest time. Half-asleep, in the darkness,
the boat
and
easily,
I
ate a lot
I
a single
could hide in it
night was the hap-
found
my way
of chocolate. But
at
around
dawn
I
is
first
climbed
I
impression was always the same:
manageable. Only
much
big so
pulled back
it's
not so bad I
feel the
my body. The swells
There was an energy
as long.
I
few minutes did
after a
heat of unease begin to creep back through
were not
I
my eyes to close again so from my bunk, knowing that by
would have grown heavy with damp. As
the hatch, the here, this
sleep.
I
wave.
feeling despondent, willing
nightfall
I
what had been accomplished. As the wind
was chased across the bottom of the earth by
woke
stiff.
the hatchway
always over the back of the boat, past the
way, to look back at
At
cold and
head beneath the spray-
the washboards in place, the opening sealed to chest
Sometimes
height.
my
here, a sense
would have felt even if I had never seen the size of the Southern Ocean on a map. I watched ashen seas rise up fully formed from a point beyond my horizon. The sky, with scarcely of exposure
a
I
pocket quarried from
slate-grey surface, pressed
its
down with
unnerving uniformity. Everything was empty and wasted, devoid of
space.
south there was
detail. In the
so long ashore
I
wanted
I
everyone
had forgotten to
know
who came
here
different? Polynesian
south,
if
a different scale,
to live
of
a
this
after
infinite
way.
Did
this
ocean was
canoe ranging
far to the
have to accept that
tells
and
exposed to an
had always been
it
first
legend
how
sometime around the fourteenth century. The navigators
describe
what seems
the Southern Ocean.
needed
to
make
you devoted
a
to I
be
a transition
whole
ice,
perhaps the
wondered
first
ever seen in
if these Pacific
voyagers had
each time they went offshore. Or,
if
culture to the quest for land in the ocean,
17
Sailing the Pacific
as
the Polynesians had at times done, could
'home',
My
you
call
them both
at will?
course was south-east. After a
week
at sea
crossed the
I
fortieth parallel for the first time. Sailors call these waters the
Southern Ocean, or
else personalise
Screaming
Forties, the Furious Fifties, the
are not strictly authentic.
each latitude: the Roaring
Most
Sixties.
These names
charts refer only to the parent
oceans, Pacific, Atlantic, Indian.
The
area that
I
was
travelling
through has gone by
many other
names. Most of them refer to the vast land mass that was sup-
posed to
was
exist here.
called Lokak.
The Great Khan
It
was rich
told
Marco Polo
in gold, elephants
this place
and game, but
the people were savages. Fra Mauro, cartographer to the Court
of Venice, believed
it
was called
Patal,
and
that the inhabitants
painted their bodies with maps of the land
through
it.
Cartographers in Dieppe
French explorers called called
it
it
named
as
they walked
Java La Grande.
it
Gonneville Land. English privateers
Davis Land and wanted to loot
it;
colonists called
it
the
Great Southern Land; the whimsical preferred more colourful
such
titles,
or the
as
New
the Painters' Wives' Island, the Lands of Chivalry
World
in the
Moon. The
grey waters around
boat were laced with the dreams of imaginary In
November 1726 Jonathan
an old to his
my
new homelands.
Swift received a letter telling of
man who, on reading Gulliver's Travels, went immediately map to search for Lilliput and Houyhnhnm Land. But
Swift had redrawn the waters of the Pacific landscape,
as
an imaginary
and the old man found nothing. Gulliver made
sea-voyages through what
are,
in fact, inland deserts.
fourth voyage his crew mutiny and he
is
cast
away
in the
of the perfectly rational Houyhnhnms. From here he
On
country sails
only sixteen hours and reaches the 'south-east point of Holland'. In Swift's day the south-east point of
18
New
his
for
New-
Holland
Miles Hordern
was not a cartographic
(Australia)
map of the East
New
Holland
Indies,
drew the boundary of his sheet most of
this to
Holland
is
far off Moll's
sails east
through the
my
surrounded
Yahoo
Moll's
consulted, It is a
though Moll,
con-
wisely,
about 180 longitude, leaving
The
New
south-east point of
map, somewhere in the South
Houyhnhnm
When
Pacific, across the
Utopia
Seas.
It is
Gulliver
at
is
South
40
same grey waters
that
boat. Gulliver enjoys a favourable wind,
covering more than a league and stitched
Pacific,
the origin of 'utopia'.
is
expelled from the uncharted
now
at
the imagination.
'no-where', which
he
On Herman
vastly bigger than the real Australia.
is
dominated the South
tinent that
certainty.
which Swift is believed to have
skins, before
a half
each hour in a canoe of
making landfall on the
coast of Terra
Incognita.
The wind gather way.
shifted to the north-west It
was warmer now, and
of fleeces and oilskins
I
with
it
this over-anticipation.
first I
at
some
time,
wore
deck behind
me
managed
more than
little
coach-roof. At night
nothing, and
To
felt
benign
I
sails,
could have
I
days of the voyage were tense
expected the worst it
to
daily.
be
reefed
I
my last food
harness and trailed a tether around the
a
in
layers
night to reef the
in non-existent squalls, ate often, expecting
for
voyage began to
soaked in sweat.
later
The
in shirt-sleeves.
my
was over-dressed. In
went on deck
only to return ten minutes
done
I
and
seas.
a sigh,
But the Roaring
and the patter of
Forties
rain
on the
got up often to look out for ships.
I
saw
worse.
the silence I turned on the radio. I carried a short-wave on the boat and tuned it to the BBC. I had not listened World Service for the years I lived in New Zealand. The
fill
receiver to the
voice of London was something first
I
associated with the sea. In the
part of the passage the radio was turned
Clinging to the
boom
on day and
in the darkness, reefing the
19
wet
night. sail,
I
Sailing the Pacific
heard from the cabin the faint monotony of football scores,
from
familiar accents
a place
was punctuated by hourly
I
no longer
blasts
called
home. Boat-time
of triumphal music.
much of my
Navigation in the south was very simple. For
voyage lite I
had navigated by
I
navigator, but
could manage without
occasional star sights,
At the time
miles.
I
igation
as
I
nometer
Taking running
alive,
and
fixes
found
on the
sun,
and
position to within ten
that this
I
was
was important. But
I
more about the history of marine navThe true tradition of the sea is to use every you can get your hands on, or
Cook was one aboard
at sea,
knew my
a satel-
I'd
read
scrap of technology
Captain James
England with
believed that by navigating celestially
realised this.
I
it.
usually
I
keeping old traditions
was wrong, and
sextant. I'd left
had broken, then broken again, and
it
last
of the
first
afford.
to use Harrison's chro-
HMS Resolution on his second voyage to
the Pacific. Harrison's chronometer was, according to
some
landsmen, a vulgar mechanical solution to one of the great questions
how
of the age:
the finest seaman
to find longitude at sea.
Cook, arguably
Europe has produced, observed
that Harrison's
invention had been the Resolutions 'faithful guide through
and
vicissitudes
age.
climates'.
The chronometer
revolutionised nav-
more profoundly than any development
igation
Cook
referred to
it
as
all
in the electronic
'our trusty friend the Watch' and 'our
The irony is that keeping old wholly modern idea, born since the twentieth century. Once I had
never failing guide, the Watch'. traditions alive at sea sailing
became
grasped
which
this
I
is
a
recreation in
bought
a
GPS,
a device the size
gives a position within metres,
of a mobile phone
and stopped playing games
at sea.
The only
features
of shoals about ticularly the
a
on the chart of these waters were
thousand miles to the
east
a
number
of New Zealand, par-
Sophie Christensen shoal. This part of the Pacific
has a higher concentration of 'vigias' than almost any other.
Vigias are shoals and reefs, hazards to navigators, that have been
20
Miles Hordern
some time in the past but which are now questioned. Some charts mark each vigia PD or ED, 'position doubtful' or 'existence doubtful'. The Admiralty pilot book for this area of
reported
ocean
at
lists
ten vigias in the waters around the Sophie Christen-
HMNZS
sen shoal, but notes that in 1973
whole
sector
and found no
number of possible reefs in
Tux searched the
of shoaling. The
signs
pilot gives a
explanations for the erroneous reporting of
otherwise very deep water: reflections from clouds, sub-
of
oceanic volcanic
activity,
where currents of
different temperatures meet, or discoloration
shoals
splashing,
fish
especially
caused by marine organisms on the surface of calm ocean. (The
Admiralty pilot does not acknowledge the possibility that
ships'
captains fabricated the existence of shoaling in order to get their
names on the all, its
Sophie Christensen shoal existed
chart.) If the
at
charted position might not be accurate.
Over
when
the course of one squally day,
raindrops glanced
through the companionway and spat in the frying pan,
I
sailed
immediately south of the charted position of the Sophie Christensen shoal.
The depth
metres, while the sea
over the shoal
bed
around
all
down. The shoal might only be it
took
me one whole
day to
a
is is
recorded five
few hundred metres
feel sure
I
had
nine
as just
thousand metres across,
sailed past
it:
but
pre-
I
pared three meals while ducking nervously between the cockpit
and the
galley,
watching for the curl of breakers on the horizon.
These were the landmarks
on the
chart, but
in the south: shoals
which might not
which were drawn
actually
be found in the
ocean.
Before
I
left
Auckland
a relative lent
never used one before, and
of the voyage.
I
already
I
me
felt
a lens
it
video camera. for the first
I
had
few days
exposed enough, alone on
this
my own
the
bare stage, without shoving a camera in
thought of focusing
his
forgot about
made me 21
nauseous.
face.
And
The camera was
Sailing the Pacific
kept in a watertight box,
wedged
where you put your
galley
feet
into the cavity beneath the
when
on the
lying
starboard
I slept on the opposite bunk, but I often lay on bunk during the day to read. Three days passed opened a book, three days before I felt strong enough
bunk. At night the starboard
before
I
to pull myself away
When
I
stretched
from the
my
box and
the camera
legs
sea
on the bunk
pulled
I
and create
out.
it
I
a little
my
entertainment.
came up
feet
against
experimented with the
video during the course of that afternoon.
By
nightfall
it
was
a
favoured toy
Film provided the camera it
up
as a diary.
window onto my solitary world. I set cockpit when the weather allowed and used
a surreal
in the
Playing back the tape was a revelation.
my
climbing and subsiding behind
shoulders.
horizon lurch giddily to forty degrees.
my
why
muscles ached and
each day was
had no conception of myself
I'd
I
at sea:
I
I
I
saw the
watched the
understood a struggle.
believed
seas
I
now why
Until then
was
a crea-
who stared at the ocean through startled eyes, but could not my own appearance. Now saw myself shouting at the camera to make myself heard. My face was pink, my hair pulled
ture
picture
I
absurdly to one side by the
me
away.
As
a character
wind as
on screen
if someone
was trying to drag
my own human form was rec-
ognisable, fighting to maintain balance against the roll of the
boat,
making bad jokes.
When
the weather
On
film
I
grew worse
was I
alive.
stood and filmed from the
hatchway. Flecks of spray were driven across the empty cockpit
and mingled with raindrops on the teak coaming.
A black-and-
white image perfectly captured the chilling simplicity of the ocean.
And
tune
out for most of the day, but on tape
it
always there was the roar of the wind.
harsh back-note to every scene. seas I
I
it
I
was able
was unending,
zoom
in
on
a
filmed out across the jumbled
behind the boat, and panned the folding horizon. But
tried to
to
when
the furthest point visible the picture dis-
solved, the lens unable to find any outline
22
on which
to focus.
Miles Hordern
Once,
tried to
I
and take off
leave the boat
what was
went
I
would
vertically
through the
sky,
internal world: the rain
I
grew
was creeping backwards into an heavier,
I
closed the hatch, and
began filming in the resonant box of the cabin. of cooking
I
recorded the
ceremony of navigation, and
at sea, the
afternoon Spanish lesson, chanting along to
a tape,
my
by wind and ing
There
sleep.
salt
heavy and
I
looked
lost.
of the cabin so the
it
from the ocean.
thrown by It
Most
a
I
I
ready.
a
I
grew
eyes
clamp in one corner
One
night, after reefing
returned to the cabin and
started to pull off
my
first
time
I
my
sodden
overtrousers,
wave onto the bunk.
was the
days
My
encouraging.
camera up on
set the
I
would always be
tangled in the braces of
mishap.
less
slithered breathless across the screen,
I
the stiffen-
sea,
had Great Hair Days in the south.
saw was
I
in the rain,
sails
rolling.
I
My face was grey, my chin appeared dirty, with My clothes grew salt-stained and more numer-
tired.
scrappy beard.
ous.
something about the
is
observed
I
never properly dry, was sculpted
hair,
and perpetual damp:
But otherwise what
a
My
body.
my
ordering cold
beers and tapas that never came. As the days passed
changes to
filming
grey.
Reality was very different.
circus
camera could
see if the
The boat disappeared within seconds, then
behind.
left
the screen
imagine what
I
set
the camera
wet and greasy clothes, but got
tripped,
saw myself laugh
had laughed on the
and was
at this silly
trip.
filmed something, usually just a monologue.
There were routine accounts of the weather, fluctuating moods, breakages, maintenance, meals, and doubts. cut
me
off in
tumbled
mid sentence
in the sink.
When
the waves and the cold,
about the distance,
how
was to go, there was
found
its
way onto
I
as
Sometimes
spoke of the strength of the wind,
I
was dispassionate. But when
far
a crash
the boat rolled and crockery
I
I
spoke
how far there still my voice. Emptiness
had come and
a different quality to
the tape, between each syllable and every
frame. Space was the one constant throughout the voyage.
23
I
tried
Sailing the Pacific
to rationalise this place
it,
was
to
be part of it. Most of all
wanted
I
to feel that
now my home.
The ambiguous geography of Terra
Incognita exploited by Swift
At 42 South Theopompos of Chicos, I was sailing
in Gulliver's Travels first surfaced in ancient times. in the Pacific, according to a
thousand miles inland near Anostos, the City of
which
is
tained
my
shrouded in mist by day and course
would
I
nations and city-states forests I
pass
No
by night.
fire
Return,
If
main-
I
through countless independent
where the poor govern the wealthy and
of giant orchids grow from earth rich in orichalcum,
crossed the
two
great rivers, Pleasure
and Grief,
until
that divide this
continent.
The Greeks
believed a vast continent must exist in the south-
ern hemisphere to counterbalance the land masses in the north
and prevent the earth wobbling off
its
They
axis.
called
it
the
Antichthon, or Counter Earth, a place ruled by laws antipodal to those
of the
known
world.
Theopompos saw Europe,
and Africa as mere islands, 'the only continent being which men place outside this inhabited earth of ours'.
that
Asia
one
Claudius Ptolemy's world map, drawn in the second century ad, includes a representation of the Antichthon.
A
vastly elon-
gated African continent stretches far to the south and then ultimately joining Asia,
making an enclosed
sea
east,
of the Indian
Ocean. The whole of this southern continent was named Terra Australis Incognita. Ptolemy's
map
exercised a powerful influ-
ence over geographical speculation in Renaissance Europe.
The maps crude.
I
I
used to
had about
the galley,
across the
South
Pacific
dozen, but they were
which beneath the companionway
'plotting sheets'. site
a
The
sail
chart table in
24
I
all
were
terribly
the same, called
kept them
hatch.
is
But on
oppoa small
Miles Hordern
boat the chart table has to do duty for other purposes, particu-
work-bench on which to prepare food for the galley, and as a day bed, where I lie with my feet wedged in the sink because it makes a change. larly as a
GPS was
Navigation with the help of a the focus
noon
I
it
gave to each day,
New
days from the coast of
Admiralty chart of the South less
see that
At twelve
a significant ritual.
still
got a fix with the GPS, took a chart from the
my day's run.
plotted the position, and measured
was
very simple but, for
than the width of
Zealand Pacific,
my
one whole day amounted
my bunk
and pulled out
A plotting sheet
is
I
For the
first
on which
a
good
day's
more
so deep
to such a small impression
I
on
stuck the Admiralty chart under
a plotting sheet.
nothing much,
graph paper will
and empty
run
was depressing to
a
blank sheet of paper that
can be used to represent any stretch of ocean. With only difficulty,
few
used the 1:20 million
finger. It
little
the ocean, and after three days
I
table,
that this
is
serve.
a little
The Southern Ocean
is
the best chart for navigation, and
transferred isolated dangers like the Sophie Christensen shoal
on
to one.
The
Every few days in a
I
plotting sheet sailed off the
new longitude
from the
across the sea.
edge of the page. Then
scale at the top
margin. That
left
moves with you
way
I
pencilled
of the sheet and started again
the chart could keep
up with
my
voyage.
For most of the passage
east the chart table
but plotting sheets. This part of the boat to flecks of spray
charts of Chile
from the hatchway, so
and the
bunk. The navigation
housed only line
until
I
came
Over weeks of
my
as a
contained nothing
occasionally subject
precaution
tropics in a watertight folio
station, the
I
kept
beneath
my my
hub of my proud vessel at sea, across which I drew a
few blank sheets of paper,
a
each day.
is
I
thought navigation
to the short lesson
at sea
I
a dull if necessary discipline
on the use of
plotting sheets.
crossed the page ten times or more.
The
lines
south-east course repeated the same diagonal progress
25
Sailing the Pacific
across the page, each
rubbed out but
its
imprint remaining on
the paper. Eventually, as each chart got dog-eared and torn,
courses stained with coffee rings and cigarette ash,
up and
Nothing
started afresh.
water better than the use of
most
we
practical chart
illustrates
my
screwed
I
it
the nature of travel over
Even
a plotting sheet.
have of the Southern Ocean
today, the
is
an empty
page that can be anywhere.
For the
first
ten days of the voyage
must be covered by
a layer
it
seemed the whole ocean
of thick cloud and that
here meant
life
learning to live without anything beyond the grey disc of water
surrounding the boat. This was
even features in the
sky.
my
my
changing moods, and the tiny
daily routine:
answering back to
a
with no landmarks, not
Time and distance were measured by the
passage of light and dark, structure of
a place
preparing meals, easing
made my
repeatedly crossing the same chart. Everything that a
sails,
Spanish tape, turning the pages of a novel, life
voyage rather than an episode of hopeless captivity was com-
municated through motion.
best in
my spine. The my muscles.
engage
it
roll
are
up
little
By
its
the sea through the corkscrew
a city-dweller the
understood.
towel on
felt
could never escape
I
either.
I
Southern Ocean was something
The ocean was only
but
it,
skills
I
I
knew
could not
of reading motion
the swing of a tea-
hook.
And then one morning, after ten days at sea, woke to find that The cloud had lifted. climbed to the I
everything had changed.
I
deck in strong sunshine. Everything was fresh and
clear.
Seas broke
innocently around the quarters. Spray took on a soapy quality that
reminded
me
of home. To the north-east
drawing back across the ate a
bowl of muesli
sky.
in the cockpit, but got
mouthful to explore the freedom of
Without
a slab
Elsewhere the sky was
a
deep blue.
I
up between each
a bright and dry world.
oilskins or boots, everything sped up.
26
of cloud was
I
careered around
Miles Hordern
During the course of that morning
the deck in delight.
the boat inside-out, pulling everything I
dozed on
internal
all
around me,
In the evening
mixed
I
first
time on the passage,
sky.
There was no
moon
chilblains tingling in the
my usual glass
comparison with the ocean. go.
Some
away. that
stars
However
a clear night
dominate the more
I
could see so
much of it
partial, there
Two
was
of scale,
a sense
thousand years
earlier
unknown
time. Before then
sea.
But
it
was not
all
we
a
it.
ing
sea
rum
a
I
a
Polynesian navi-
way
until the space missions all
of
it,
at
one
for sure,
a picture
you had
of
to set off
journey, a line of understanding.
web of lines, but
a handful.
(possibly rather too if all
know
to
became
may be
more than
about space
one
could do was take a tiny piece of water
you wanted
So the
Collectively there us have
in
completeness
and project, extrapolate, imagine, in order to create
across
all
to find their
of the 1960s that anyone had seen an ocean —
the whole. If
fragile
Space seemed so very easy in
sea.
had used knowledge of the heavens
across an
midday sun.
were brighter, some lower, some looked further
was fathomable.
gators
my
of rum but now, for the
was able to look out into
I
that night to
dome of the
around the
could up to dry on deck.
and they stretched, unbroken by skyline or
patterns of the stars trees,
turned
of bedding and cushions, the trappings of
a pile
world
I
I
As
I
sat
much)
could see of
it
I
individually
on deck
wondered how I would feel one time was a gossamer
at
thread weaving between unseen constellations.
27
few of
that night drink-
Two
It
was obvious
meter had been
weather was going to be bad. The baro-
that the
midnight.
falling since
was howling across the
A
dry north-west gale
sea.
The pace of the ocean world was quickening by the hour. The wind was doing things to the water that I hadn't seen before. The seas still weren't steep, but they were very, very long, and somehow non-liquid, like a range of shifting dunes stretching beyond the
horizon.
The
only slowly.
I
swells rose
up behind the boat and surged forwards
was running before the wind, almost
as fast as
the
waves. As the peaks approached, a portion to one side of the boat
sometimes burst forwards in boat
I
watched the green
man on lips
stilts.
crests lurch up, false
First the self-steering
of water, minty green,
quarter.
It
of
full
was mid morning before
of the boat, cockpit.
mass of white water. Behind the
a
The
a messy, spit-like
surprise
not be shaken from
light
a sea
blow
was to find
it
and wobbly
like a
gear disappeared, then twin
and
air,
ran past each
broke right over the back
that harmlessly filled the
was wet and cold, and could
my clothes. Then the scene of grey desolation
behind the boat was again momentarily revealed, before the next swell filled the skyline.
By noon the wave-crests were being torn apart by the wind. Spume spiralled away, helpless and exhausted, into the distance. 29
Sailing the Pacific
The cloud looked sore, where
its
down from
the sky and bit into the planet's surface.
stamped
will
been
Some-
surface swept painfully smooth.
to the south-west the knotted heart of a depression sank
its
on the ocean
onto the water:
stencilled
tuation
around, I
as if a
The system map had
weather
saw the fingerprint pattern of
bound, squeezing new
isobars, tightly
ocean.
all
from an
life
indifferent
The arrival of the depression was almost a relief, a puncmark in the timeless blur of life at sea. Even as the
waves grew, the ocean shrank.
whose movements were
ological structure
now
was defined
It
by
meteor-
a
predictable.
I
knew
bad weather was coming and could count down the hours. The emptiness was being
filled
by
events.
Throughout the day I made what few preparations were possible. There was a sense of fatalism about everything I did, that
someone
else
was responsible —
that other
guy
desk back home, watching the street scene outside, all
rose it
I
a
took in the
tight
more
sails,
with webbing.
so than for
hard. Fear at sea day,
who
thought
good idea. At sea I wondered if I were puppet being worked by my former self. As the wind
of this would be such
simply
behind the
sitting
seldom
many is
a force
a
handling the canvas roughly and lashing
Work was days.
something
which
easy.
felt
I
strong and focused,
was the waiting that had been so
It
that seeps into the boat day after
bursts in with a rush
and
a roar.
The boat was stripped bare now, except for a scrap of headThe deck was clean. The empty rig was wheeling amid the waves. I loved it this way. The boat was simply a machine for sail.
ocean
had no name, no character, no
travel. It
function of the voyage that
downwind clung to I
to say: This
is
what
In the cabin
books
I
in place.
I
the
am,
I
had
set into
boom, and I
motion. As
we
the boat beneath
it
was
a
careered
me seemed
can shrink no more - and
wedged cushions I
aesthetic:
I
won't.
into the bookcases to keep
my
bolted the forehatch, screw-sealed the vents,
and locked cupboards. Everything was finally fastening the
buckle of
tight
and pressured,
a leather strap
30
around
a
like
packed
Miles Hordern
suitcase.
put the
cooked
I
some of it from the pot and some reason I put on clean beginning of the voyage. As I
a large stew, ate
Then
rest in a locker.
for
clothes, almost the first since the
fastened the buttons and pulled up layers of zips
it felt
like
was
I
dressing for a big night out.
As the
light
the cockpit.
faded on that
first
evening
climbed back out to
I
was an exhilarating scene: everything was wind
It
and speed, water rushing
bowled down each
past as the boat
wave. In the cabin there had been
sense of this fairground
little
The north-west wind was hot and clammy As the boat surfed down
ride.
sweat, again over-dressed.
the biggest seas level, a
thick
I
began
to
the faces of
cut a deep furrow, at times buried to deck
it
plume of water
Too
cast to either side.
thick, really:
sometimes the motion was wooden and unresponsive. The boat
was going too that the nose
fast.
The danger when running
of the boat will be buried in the trough just
next wave breaks behind. goes end-over-end. in a
much
It
Then you
are pitch-poled
had happened
to
smaller boat. This time
carried a drogue anchor. canvas, shaped like a
on
the boat
a
before big seas
A drogue
is
I
a
wind-sock but
me
you surfing too
drag device
You
When
I
made of heavy trail it it
behind
works
like a
threw the drogue
over the side two hundred feet of line disappeared after seconds, while
I
slithered
to get tangled up.
warp was a harness cleats to
like a I
the
once before, though
shorter.
fast.
as
the boat
was better prepared, and
long rope weighted with chain and
brake, stopping
—
is
it
in
around in the small cockpit trying not
When the
drogue
water the nylon
bit into the
The end of the
rod of iron.
had made before the voyage
both winches in the cockpit.
line
was attached to
that linked the
Even
so,
I
two
stern
was not sure
that
four of these strong-points wouldn't be ripped out of the
all
deck.
Some of
complex now. I
the ideas
I'd
I'd
had before the voyage seemed too
never been in such big seas before.
could do no more, and bolted the hatch closed behind me.
Inside the cabin at night
it
was
a surreal
3i
world. Everything was
Sailing the Pacific
Any
sensation.
sense of direction, of a voyage, even of the sea,
had disappeared. The gale had bound the wind and the ocean into one. Black forces descended
no pattern
could read. As
I
from everywhere. There was
was trying to get out of my
I
clothes,
three volumes of hard-bound sight-reduction tables slid from the
bookcase and
fell
fended off the
first
nose. seas
Now that
me on the bridge
of my
more
two but the
broke over the
When
I
the boat was being slowed by the drogue, stern.
third hit
heard spray slosh heavily into the
I
cockpit, and sometimes land with a
ionway.
me.
near-vertically across the cabin towards
it
did, there
was
bang on the closed companthen
a split-second pause,
drops of icy water surged between the washboards and
few
a
fell
onto
the engine box.
my
lay in
I
bunk. This was the
safest place to be.
could
I
feel
the boat lifting to the seas, then the drogue biting into the water
and hauling backwards. The running through the boat. seas in this
way
that
I
felt
strain
was something
was only when
It
their
raw energy.
I
could
tried to resist the
I
pictured
I
on the black ocean: the drogue anchor represented digging in
its
could hear
my
spread through the
boat will,
was run through with tension.
it
teeth chattering, but
was shaking, vibration it
in
my my
hold back something unstoppable.
heels, trying to
The boat and everything
feel
it
was not
starting in the hull
cold.
I
Everything
and being amplified
as
rig.
Gales in a cruising yacht today are not like those in old-time
movies, with bearded
men
in sou'westers battling at the
while the grip throws buckets of water over them.
on
a self-steering system:
for
me
and
to
slept
with the drogue
do but get into bed.
I
set,
there was nothing
have had several bad gales
through most of them. But
as
I
was
a victim,
me, the
but not of the
sea.
I
at sea,
lay there that night,
shuddering in time to the vibration of the boat, I
wheel
My boat was
I
couldn't sleep.
was the victim of
that other
me who had sat staring at charts in Auckland and thought
that the ego-trip
of playing with the
32
largest thing
on
earth
would
Miles Hordern
be worth
up
to
But
it.
me had calculated that the boat would be me here right now who was going to find
That other
it.
it
was the
And somewhere
out.
between then and now, those old I
must have dozed There was
to reality.
off.
side to side.
while
I
I
woke
on
my jacket
could
I
feel the
I
climbed over the
floor of the cockpit.
I
I
took some time. Then
told
wind and
the
me
ride
the boat was
rolling
heap on the
in a
moment,
moving very
fast.
felt
I
to catch
the darkness. This
saw the X-ray image of the
slightly ridiculous
remove
sea at night.
now —
coaming
nauseous.
The
the fair-ground
had gone wrong.
Using
a torch,
I
saw
that even the tiny headsail
maintain some directional straining line
to
the seas rushing past the cockpit
whole thing seemed
on
right inside the boat,
and landed
lay curled there for a
I
back
lay
opened the
I
want
didn't
would break
top, slipped,
I
and overtrousers,
my breath and waiting for my eyes to adjust to Only
the deck.
struggled with those stupid wet clothes. As
the washboards for fear a sea
lost.
urgency beating overhead
hatch, the rush of the gale was blinding.
so
had been
certainties
in the small hours, shaken
new noise coming from
a
the cabin floor to pull
from
hundred miles of ocean
in the twelve
stability
I
was using to
was too much. The
sail
was
up and down, buckling out of shape. Part of the leech
had pulled out and was and
furling line
and then
stuck.
flailing in
started to heave. It
The
wouldn't budge.
the gale.
line I
I
came
uncleated the
in a
few inches
pulled again, but
it
was
stuck. I
needed
a harness, so
to
to free the line.
A sea broke
across
The water seemed
knees.
was already wearing
I
clipped onto the jack-stay and began crawling along
the side-deck.
my
go on deck
my back,
water foamed around
to capture light:
strangled and blue, searching forwards for a
was flogging hard, cracking in spasms cuted. If
I
didn't
destruction, and
I
as if it
do something soon couldn't afford to lose
33
it it
I
saw
new
my
grip.
hands,
The
sail
were being electro-
would
flog itself to
so early in the voyage.
Sailing the Pacific
I
followed the furling line along the stanchions and crawled up
into the
bows of the
ated here;
The corkscrew motion was exagger-
boat.
needed both hands
I
just to hold on. Seas surged
my
over the anchor lashed in the stemhead and parted round thighs.
traced the furling line to the
I
jammed,
forestay: the line wasn't
drum.
I'd
pulled the furler tight.
and had
to grease the bearings
But obviously not very drum, and the the
sail.
roll.
forestay,
fitted a
tight
my body
The clew was
around the
two
When floor.
on the
left
off in
Auckland
at the same time. enough rope on the
short of fully furling
rolls
my head now.
it I
took before finally
I
did
I
steel
D-ring
flying
had one arm wrapped
I
and with the other hand
furler
tried to drag the
lost
sail
count of how many
it.
got back into the cabin
I
collapsed onto the
Water streamed over the greasy plywood floorboards, then
chased gravity off my just
none
sail
swinging from side to side with
and untie the sheet from the D-ring.
attempts
the base of the
new line
head height, the
at
around somewhere behind
in
there was
taken the
well: there wasn't
had come
at
pulled myself up the furler, arms and legs wrapped
I
around the each
line
I'd
drum
up
as
the boat heaved, but never caught up.
wet clothes and
fell
into the bunk, exhausted.
done would only have taken
weather. As
it
was,
I'd
a
I
pulled
The job
I'd
couple of minutes in calm
been out there
for over half an hour.
My
Even a minor, selfinflicted problem had sapped my strength. I wondered how I'd get on if I needed to go out again now to do something else. The motion on a small boat made the simplest physical things a struggle, things like pulling on a jacket, moving down the cabin,
arms, legs and chest were
and
stiff
my own
maintaining balance, controlling
ocean were stripping
Mid morning on
me
sore.
limbs.
It
of the things which made
the following day the
ninety degrees and increased to
fifty
34
was
as if
the
me human.
wind backed through
knots.
There was
a
period
Miles Hordern
of heavy
and cloud
rain,
to sea level.
Then, with the new wind,
the rain stopped and a sheet of grey cloud again raced overhead.
The south-west wind was bringing to the
first,
cockpit
I
causing the boat to
hung from
the steel
a
new
swell at right-angles
on a difficult cross-sea. In the hoop of the spray-hood, supposroll
my role as skipper, my legs braced out to either side so that my limbs formed a letter X. kept it up for ten minutes, but there was nothing for me to do so climbed back edly asserting
I
I
to the cabin.
I
cushions until
wedged myself into I
was packed
the
bunk with
in tight, but
I
back and stomach from the pressure of each
An
hour
later
bags and
my
roll.
the boat rise to the next wave and track
felt
I
sail
was soon sore on
down the face, but then lose its way and slew round to the port side. The tinned stores beneath the bunks crashed with the force. I heard glass jars smashing. The roll was all one way now, the weight always on my stomach. The boat was no longer sailing downwind, but sideways-on to the swells, fully exposed to the sea, most vulnerable to being knocked down. I jumped out of the bunk and stared out of the narrow cabin window. I couldn't angle
my
head to see the top of the next swell
as it
approached,
but a few seconds later the boat lurched over the top.
I
climbed
and harness. The boat was wallowing
to the cockpit in oilskins
in a long grey trough.
I
leant over the transom.
paddle of the self-steering gear had
split
off the
The
fibre-glass
aluminium
pole,
perhaps weakened by the force of the cross-swell. Hanging head first
over the back of the boat,
The boat
the paddle.
head.
Once
the broken paddle.
work without it. a
fit it,
I
It
sat
spluttering
was
useless,
I
I
and the
my
wriggled backwards
on the cockpit
sole nursing
self-steering wouldn't
did have a second paddle, and three times tried
but sliding the old one off was
new one
minutes.
took the pin out of the stock of
the paddle was disconnected
up into the boat, then
to
I
pitched and the sea slopped up over
much
on, with the sea slopping into couldn't do
it.
My
ribs
35
easier than sliding
my
face every
ached with bruises
few
when
I
Sailing the Pacific
back into the cockpit. Worried about the boat lying
finally slid
broadside to the Self-steering
seas,
I
hand
started to
steer.
was something I had long taken for granted.
an Aries vane gear, a mechanical device that
wind
tive to the
a
in virtually
wind,
struggles at I
entity,
at
sat
its
centre.
the
tiller
the cockpit.
was steering by hand the
and
stiff
my
with
if
the
I lit
was lucky smoked them down to the
I
spray or rain destroyed them.
on
legs
filter.
I
piece of
a
cigarettes often, filter
before the
My teeth began to chatter and chew My course was
didn't bother with the compass.
determined by the
never seen the boat
seas. I'd
passed. I'd
so
roll
far,
scoop-
My arms ached, my fingers went
ing up water on each side-deck.
numb. Time
my own
braced across
become
solid: I'd
machinery, only there to do a job of work.
and
steered by the
a very simple place, with
that day
all
They locked
I
use
Vane steering makes
powered and
When
sailing over the horizon.
Southern Ocean shrank to
conditions.
all
boat an almost independent
I
boat rela-
steers the
now become
that caricature
from the
movies, the figure in oilskins fighting with the helm while water is
thrown
across his back.
But the
cinema image. The waves
down
sea
is still
different
the faces of the same wave and reform, the
lacerated
by the wind into
seemed impossible
from the
are smaller, but longer. Crests break
that I'd ever
whole
surface
of white spume. Sometimes
lines
found
my way
it
to this desolate
corner of the earth, son of a chartered accountant and
a
lawyer
from Birmingham. This was the furthest place imaginable from everything the
tiller
might see
I'd
been destined
that afternoon, it
as part
know our planet
of
its
I
to
know.
wondered
own
if
so well that people like
to have a relationship with the sea.
I
as
I
sat
shivering at
Ocean
the Southern
destiny that
have no time for such thoughts now.
at
And
one day we would
me would come
don't believe
But those were
it's
my
here.
I
possible
thoughts
the time.
As night
fell
the
wind
eased.
It
36
was
still
gale-force but the seas
Miles Hordern
were breaking more harmlessly, and the cross-swell had evened out.
I
simple and the
tiller.
knew
I
understood everything:
The
the boat to
I
small world.
My role
either pulled or
morning
would come
this
could have moderated and
seas
lie ahull.
I
could
normality would return. In the only end in sight.
By
be able to leave
then replace the paddle, and
sleep,
my
less. I
to an end.
I'd
was
pushed on
night was empty, but structured none the
that in the
morning the
a
my own
blackly locked into
sat
dawn had become seemed to be all but over. Only
exhaustion,
The passage I would arrive. That
few more hours and
night was filled with
time in a way that hadn't happened before on the voyage.
Through
the darkness and diminishing spray
crawl around the face of my watch.
became
In the gale, time
real.
I
watched the hands
The ocean was an easier place.
The hours had
purpose:
the development of the depression against them, and
With time
failing strength.
was sea
as
my
opened up around me. Then
Time
at sea
is
slippery.
gauged
my own
measuring-board, ocean
But when the weather returned
quantifiable.
I
its
to
life
normal the
true character was restored.
On the ocean everything shifts, it slides
and mingles and becomes part of something new. The world afloat
is
dulum
governed by
that
of timepiece, an ocean pen-
sometimes stops altogether.
dateless world,
rarely
a different sort
I
live in a
one punctuated perhaps by
by anything so concrete
as
light
drawn-out and and dark, but
night and day.
The poet Derek Walcott wrote 'The sea is history'. In the Southern Ocean I found it hard to locate myself in any meaningful
concept of the present.
est
thing in view.
I
On
It
was the
the ocean
liken the water to a vast,
I
feel that
I
was often the
am
a part
clear-
of history.
unwieldy tapestry wrapped around
The tapestry is made up of thousands of sepSome strands are gold thread, some silk, some some are bold and strong, others frayed and tatty. The
most of the
earth.
arate strands.
cotton,
past that
37
Sailing the Pacific
who has who have simply looked and And just a few of those strands
ocean tapestry has been woven into being by everyone ever been here, but also by those
wondered. are
It is
an inclusive cloth.
mine, bound up with Greek cosmologers, medieval map-
makers, poets, and whalers. Along the coastline the cloth
and heavy, in places
stiff with
oceans of the south
it is
strands
and nothing in between. There
when
times
understanding. But on the furthest
threadbare, sometimes just a
in fact. History at sea hasn't
the
are other gaps too
- holes,
the ocean was ignored or discounted, others
bottom of the world, was
Virgilius,
few lonely
been continuous. There have been
speculation about what lay beyond at
thick
is
a
home
waters,
dangerous
and
when
especially
activity.
Bishop of Salzburg, was condemned
as a heretic in
the eighth century for suggesting the Antipodes could be inhabited.
Christian teaching stated that after the Flood the habitable
world was divided into three continents, one for each of Noah's three sons.
Shem
got Asia, Japheth Africa and
The southern hemisphere
did not
exist.
A
St
Europe.
medieval Spanish
Benedictine abbot, Beatus of Liebana, wrote in
on the Apocalypse of
Ham
his
commentary
John: 'The Southern zone
...
is
un-
known to the sons of Adam. It has no links to our race. No human eye has seen it. Access is barred to men, and the sun makes it
impossible to enter this region.'
An
early Christian
named Cosmas
map of
the world was
to interpret the Bible physically,
tangular
box
believed that
drawn by
Indicopleustes in the sixth century.
a
monk
Cosmas
and portrayed the earth
representing the Tabernacle of Moses.
tried
as a rec-
Cosmas
on the underside of the earth, beyond the known where humans had lived before
oceans, there was another world the Flood. This continent was
and the oceans surrounding of poisonous
gas.
now uninhabited and unreachable
it
were on
fire,
shrouded
in a mist
Miles Hordern
It
at sea, and a gale, before I began to feel at home Those ten days were spent trying to adjust to life the empty ocean realm. I once met a French single-handed
took ten days
in the south.
in
sailor in the
Marquesas
understand the
knots and knows
tie
of rules and
who
told
me
that the English did not
'For you, a seaman
sea.
when
to fly each flag.
But
traditions.
someone who can
is
French
in
The
sea
is
a place
seaman, un marin,
a
is
someone who knows the sea and understands how to live here.' The Frenchman said these words as he served me a large gruyere and tender taro-leaf omelette in Hiva Oa. food
I
had had in weeks. As
a locker
He
beneath
my feet.
I
I
began to
It
eat
was the
he took
a
first
fresh
box from
could see several small bottles inside.
show very good
pulled a piece of paper from between the bottles to
was
me.
It
one
as it
a
hand-drawn map of the world, not
a
appeared that India had originally been omitted, then
squeezed onto an already crowded Indian Ocean. The This box and
marked with twelve prominent
crosses.
had been
his father:
a bon voyage gift
from
when
vintage brandy, one to be drunk
its
map was contents
twelve half-bottles of
each of the twelve way-
on this journey around the world was reached. The Frenchman now took a bottle from the box and un-
points
corked
it.
He poured us both a glass.
although there was a cross to the south-west,
I
at Tahiti,
I
studied the
map
again, but
another seven hundred miles
could see no indication that a bottle was sup-
He smiled, and showed He was not yet halfbottles remained. He said,
posed to be drunk here in the Marquesas.
me
the contents of the
way round
box more
clearly.
the world, but only three
'But father was also un marin. At sea you must the present. There
is
My father would be
bottles
would do when they had still
be in the
Pacific.
He
all
of brandy,
been
looked
39
I
me
my
asked
finished.
at
At
proud of me,
was preparing
think. SalutV Later that evening, while he
open another of the
completely in
nothing beyond the horizon. Learn to be
content with what you have. I
live
host
this rate
to
what he
he would
through watery eyes and
Sailing the Pacific
'Actually,
said,
Atlantic.
you know,
bought these
I
know
about brandy you would sea,
only the
moment
finished
I
flags
that this stuff
it
sound
from books. Learning
peace in the present
There
are
not vintage. At
is
easy.
You can
learn knots
to live at sea, learning to find
moment only, new voyage.
renegotiated with each the French
you knew anything
important.'
is
But the French guy made and
twelve bottles in the
all
in Martinique. If
process that must be
a
is I
guess the brandy helped
sailor.
two ways of looking
at
my
the routine of
daily
life
in
the Southern Ocean. There was the superficial routine, the one I
thought I
I
followed; and there was the routine
thought
had devised
I
care of the necessities of
a detailed timetable
life
and provide
a
I
actually kept.
of
tasks to take
minimum
of variety:
preparing food and numerous drinks; writing a log; navigation;
Spanish lessons; reading; certain programmes on the radio. These tasks
could usually be completed regardless of sea conditions
(there
were one or two other pastimes,
like
tournament, that were weather-dependent). this
timetable
a tiny act
strictly,
not
as
of defiance. In the
my I
on-going
wanted
to
darts
keep to
an act of mindless regimen but fluid
ocean world precision was
as
a
luxury, and a statement of autonomy. Like finding a small flower in the desert,
I
cherished the arrival of each appointed hour.
But the routine
I
actually kept wasn't like this.
appointed hour arrived
I
sometimes did not notice
it,
When and
the
failed
to progress to the next activity.
At
sea, alone,
I
was always
sailing the boat. In reality
focused on the wind and waves even
when
I
was
cooking, or writing,
or drilling Spanish question forms. Certainly while sleeping.
When sort I
I
started sailing
I
might have
of stuff that good seamanship
don't believe 'vigilance'
is
is
called this 'vigilance', just the
made
of,
and so on. But
now
the correct term. In the Southern
40
Miles Hordern
Ocean I saw no
ships
New Zealand and Chile.
between
Changes
weather were rarely sudden. There was no need for
in the
check on the sea and wind
went off-course,
the boat
altered motion.
me
to
the time. If the weather changed or
all
was obvious quickly enough from the
it
Most times, when I abandoned my books
me
cockpit there was nothing for
to do.
I
simply stared
at
for the
the sea,
moving at its best speed, that Hours passed like this: watching the waves, keeping an eye on the ocean, oblivious of the reassured myself that the boat was
the passage ahead was getting shorter.
task
was engaged in before.
I
the time trace
I
I
cannot give
spent in the south. There
from dawn through
of experience, of
tasks
is
account of
no seam of events
that
I
can
day.
Time was a patchwork
begun and then
forgotten, hot drinks
to
dusk each
rediscovered once they'd gone cold. If snapshots of my daily
a narrative
life it
I
would show
could build a collage of
me
reading and writing
and listening and cooking; but these images would be lonely pockets of detail in an otherwise empty canvas of sea and
sky.
When people say,
day
at sea?'
I still
For days
'Yeah, yeah, but
have to
at a
reply,
'I
what did you
just don't know.'
actually do
The
sea
is
all
a thief.
time in the Roaring Forties, the wind was in the
north-west. For most of the passage
between the South
Pacific high,
the Southern Ocean.
With
my
course lay sandwiched
and depressions tracking
across
the depressions further south, the
high dominated, giving trade-wind-like conditions, but the sea spray was cold and the ocean sparkled beneath a deep blue sky.
When
the depressions tracked further north, the sky clouded
over and a blustery northerly brought rain. This shifted to the north-west after a couple sionally I
wind
usually
of days, but only occa-
backed west or south.
kept the
wind on
mostly south-east or part-furled
genoa the
the port quarter, so
my
course was
With a double-reefed mainsail and a boat would run 140 miles in twenty-four
east.
4i
Sailing the Pacific
making deep rolls to starboard at the bottom of each sea. My bunk was on the port side, so at night I hung in the lee cloth, which was comfortable. During the day, to read, I lay on the starboard bunk with my legs curled up, because the foot-box was stowed with gear. The companionway was always closed to keep hours,
out the spray But I
when
the weather was fine, wearing oilskins,
could stand in the cockpit, holding the
spray-hood, breathing deep
as
the boat rolled with the seas and
chased cloud shadow over the horizon.
above
all
others,
moved
in
by the
first
It
and
felt
I
prized these times
when a new bank of wet
defeated
from the north and
handles on the
steel
cloud
was driven back into the cabin
I
drops of rain.
had been raining hard for two days when
I
first
noticed a
new sound on the boat. From somewhere indistinct I heard a twang. The knock of tins which had rolled loose or of other gear buried in lockers was
had
ing on the starboard
and
common
a
a resonant, vibrating quality
bunk
dressed and climbed to the
mist and rain.
The wind was
gusty and the boat's sea,
I
and nothing was amiss
roll steep.
wet clothes and
lay
page of my book before
I
down on
back
I
could hear no
it
becomes
where
sound-box,
the bunk.
heard the sound again.
the source of the noise, but a
a place
The
in the rig.
climbed back into the cabin and closed the hatch.
my
sound
and an occasional crack
from the deep reef hanging off the boom. But
off
this
been read-
some time, and my legs felt cold was coming from the rigging, so got cockpit. The sea was smothered in
only noise was the rush of wind and
twang,
But
interruption.
didn't recognise. I'd
for
guessed the noise
stiff. I
I
was
of the boat, and their significance
is
difficult.
noises
At
I
I
pulled
I'd
read a
tried to trace sea the cabin
echo inside the
shell
amplified by an unoccupied
mind. The twang seemed to be coming from somewhere overhead, but even this was difficult to assess because rolled, the floor
were not
and ceiling became the
clearly defined.
42
walls.
when
the boat
'Up' and 'down'
Miles Hordern
of wind and motion around the The sound was not regular. A minute or two
tried to read the pattern
I
twanging
noise.
might
pass before
which
are rolling, like tins,
But
rolls.
And
recurred.
it
it
was
a single
sound: things
knock in both directions as the boat only heard this sound when the boat came back
I
upright, and only after the deepest
rolls. I
started searching in the
compartment. There were spray cans here which
toilet
could account for the higher pitched, hollow sound
from
rolling I
side to side.
But the cans were
watched them quite stationary
now
thought.
I
went back
I
as
to the
all
at
I
wedged
in place.
bunk
for a
few minutes, and
if I'd left a
winch
the mast-step that was sliding around.
This went on cabin
thought
I
they were
the twang continued, louder
then climbed back to the deck, wondering handle
if
all
morning, and most of the afternoon. In the
could focus on nothing
The
else.
noise
seemed
to get
my head.
But each time I climbed to wind across limitless space, the twanging sound seemed a trivial concoction of
louder, drilling deeper into
the deck and heard the rush of
memory
of the
my mind. ings, tied
and
I
crawled up to the stemhead to check the anchor lash-
back the halyards, but
a short
it
was
a lousy
day with heavy rain
time on deck was usually enough to convince
me that
nothing serious was wrong. Over the course of the morning
I
emptied everything from beneath the bunks in the forepeak: the
main cabin
floor
of junk, and
was wedged with storm
thousand
a
feet
of warp.
I
sails,
felt
bags of parts, bags
with
my
over the inside of the hull, and then of the ceiling, still
seemed
to
as
fingers
all
the sound
be somewhere high up, but there was
really
nothing here that could move. In the afternoon
I
started
These had been hanging shelves
on
my
on the cabin
voyage.
last
sole,
on the
lockers opposite the lavatory.
lockers, but I'd divided I
them up with
pulled everything out and stacked
it
except for two anchors that were lashed to the
Then put it all back again. Then, after another ten minutes on the bunk with a book, decided that the sound was
bulkheads.
I
I
43
Sailing the Pacific
definitely a
coming from those
second time. Then
felt
lockers, so
carefully
a small vibration
each time
hands beneath the side-deck
heard the sound.
I
I
pulled everything out
around the hull and bulkthought
I
it
grew
a clear
could
I
When
heard the twang.
I
touched the chainplate there was time
all
Near the tops of the bulkheads
heads.
my
I
stronger,
buzzing sensation each
The
raced back up to the cockpit.
I
feel
moved and when I I
chainplate in question anchored the cap-shroud, the length of
wire running from the side-deck to the top of the mast. the shroud for
on
a
long
seemed
time, but nothing
roll to starboard,
on the shrouds stay
some
I
saw
to protect the
one of the
it:
sail at
fell
back
the spreaders rode up the wire the boat
as
standing on the breezy deck
it
was
thick,
could hear no sound,
I
and though I
was what had been resonating around the cabin.
up
to the mast-step
to
keep the
doing
this
and again having
disc
and flicked
pinned
a spare
down
previously had fallen lay
came
down the stay and hit the spreader. The disc was
only four centimetres in diameter, but
this
watched
plastic discs that sit
about a metre, pushed by the wind; then,
upright,
I
to change. Then,
down with
finally traced the
whole day searching
for
a
it
that
climbed
had been
(the tape that
When
off).
I
halyard round the spreader,
against
book
knew
I
got back to the cabin
there was
little
source of the twang.
I'd
satisfaction at
spent almost a
something quite unimportant.
many times on the The sounds of the ocean were one of my guides in trying understand my environment. Sound is a constant at sea. Silence This sort of wild-goose chase was repeated
voyage. to is
impossible. If only subconsciously,
From
It
rose
comfort
this
in the south: the
easy progress to the east. its
listening.
wind became
a
from somewhere beneath the horizon and
swept tunelessly over the ocean. In
of
was always
the deck, the sound of the north-west
dull throb.
greatest
I
I
barren sound
I
found
my
wind spoke of constant and
dreaded hearing
a
change
in the
note
drone.
The
sea itself, the water,
made 44
little
noise.
Waves slopped
Miles Hordern
around the transom, and heavy gobs of spray landed on the teak in the cockpit.
Individual waves just great rush that took
hatch
at
became away
night and again
me
that
approaching.
seas
part of that oceanic sound, the
my
when
breath
I
pulled back the
the force of global exposure.
felt
Inside the cabin, these sounds to surprise
sound of the
rarely heard the
I
were
In fact,
lost.
plywood washboards and
it
never failed
could
a teak hatch
so effectively shut out the great roving sounds of the ocean
make of the cabin a separate world of noises. The sound of the wind reached in here through the whine of the wind-generator climbing and subsiding with the gusts. Sound in outside the boat, and
the cabin was strangely dislocated, an abstract reflection of the
passage of a small boat under
sail.
was almost inaudible. Instead, gurgling whoosh
With
could only hear progress,
I
the boat rode
as
the hatch closed, the
down
wind
a long,
the face of each sea and
bubbles raced upward round the wine-glass-shaped section of the hull.
Sometimes,
crest
would
I
was,
tions. In
in
shatter
long seas
this
the boat was reaching in breaking seas, a
whump
a great
stiffen
into
its
is
and wherever
side,
with alarm. But these were excep-
most conditions, the sound of a yacht
sailing off the
wind
quite benign, like a child sliding backwards and for-
wards in the bath.
on
with
my body
felt
I
when
sound.
It
My perception of the marine world was based
varied only a
little. It
sounds of the ocean were
Some sounds
was
a
sound
that
conveyed
on which the more
limited information, a simple note
subtle
built.
heard from inside the cabin were identifiable. As
wind rose the main halyard started to bang against the mast. The other halyards were wound between the mast steps to
the
prevent free to
of
it
or occasionally tied back, but
this,
warn of rising winds.
beating
woke me from
It
was
a
I
left
the
main halyard
heavy rope, and the sound
the deepest sleep, a warning bell
from the watch-tower. The creak of the self-steering their blocks at first
was
different;
it
lines
on
rose in pitch slowly over several days,
an anguished yelp, then desperate, until
45
I
was driven from
Sailing the Pacific
my bunk,
usually barefoot in the middle of the night, with a can
of
the blocks.
oil for
Other sounds had
on the
disc falling stole
my
obvious source. Like the twang of the
They were minor proportion. Over the first
concentration.
grow out of tried to
a less
spreaders, these appeared
all
minimise the potential for these
found the
the rhythms of the sea.
I
the lockers and restacked
them
found the AA-size battery as
the boat rolled.
It
was
beneath some engine parts, at the
stood the
I
When
have
tins that
some
sailcloth
third locker sea
were
rolling in
Then
a friend
on
and
a
bag of I
and
ocean I
irritating,
who
weeks suddenly
refuses to
be annoyed by
tapping sounds begins he
side in a locker
and
pulls the
and together they blend into the
is
dis-
fabric of
life.
cannot do
keeps
toilet
best under-
towel out of the cutlery drawer, so that no single sound tinct
box
when the contents of a locker
stray its
I
was knocking
emptied.
silent for three
one of these
deliberately puts a coffee jar
I
I
stray intrusions into
that every ten seconds
filters,
bottom of the
knock.
such things.
days of the passage
in a small plastic jar inside a plastic
random nature of the
started to
could
irritations that
so they wouldn't budge.
had been bedded down and
that
from nowhere and
me
source.
this. It's
not the noise
itself that obsesses
me
and
chasing around the boat, but the need to trace
It is
the
unknown
that's
unnerving
46
at sea.
its
Three
woke early one morning with a start. The wind had been dying when I'd last looked out, and the sounds in the cabin had I
been only
slight:
the rustle of water flowing around the hull and
an occasional snap
when
the leech of the headsail collapsed and
re-set in the westerly breeze. Otherwise, inside the cabin,
been quite lockers
all
my
still,
troublesome stores
But when clanking; a
drawer.
for
had
finally at rest in the
around. I
woke
morning
that
on the
sounds: a pencil was rolling
its
it
I
heard
a
number of
stray
chart table; the bowls were
CD was sliding on the floor; the cutlery was restless in Then
the boat gave a heavy jar as the mainsail crashed
want of wind.
the cockpit.
I
pulled open the hatch and climbed out into
There was no rush of
air.
The morning
light
was
weak through wet cloud, the sun hidden from view. I looked at the compass. The wind was still in the west, but now very light. Over the course of that morning the wind veered 180 and ,
a
fifteen-knot easterly set
in.
and made the best course
I
A
headwind.
I
sheeted in the
could south-south-east, the boat
pitching bluntly and rolling through an uneasy heel in the sea.
I
went back
by the time
I
to bed. Perhaps a front
woke
sails
would go through, and would
the old pattern of north-westerlies
have returned.
47
lumpy
Sailing the Pacific
But the barometer was
By midday
throughout that morning. the east.
stripped the
I
trailing the I
and the wind rose
falling
from the
sails
was blowing
it
rig
steadily
from
a gale
and ran off to the west,
drogue anchor, back the way
had come.
I
hate going backwards at sea. I've only been forced to run off
before
particular malevolence.
engine box, throwing
remember each occasion with a for most of that afternoon on the
and
a gale three times,
sat
I
darts.
I
I
took to
my bed
before
it
was even
dark.
A voyage
a line
of wake which disappears seconds behind the boat, and a line
is
a fragile thing. It
of intention ahead which
impose
A voyage
it.
is
is
as
and people.
It
was
only a line across the water:
long and strong
a belief that
horizon days away, the destination age, a bar,
is
as
the
sailor's will
to
somewhere ahead, beyond the is
a real place,
with an anchor-
put these things on hold
difficult to
while the boat was blown backwards. Without progress the ocean
was bedlam, only noise and motion, no direction.
The gale blew for two nights. back towards a handful
but only
bunk
of times.
ran a hundred and seventy miles
I
drank water from
a
left
I
dozed.
my bunk only
mug and ate
and listened to audio books.
Mostly
I
of both. Each sticky meal was an
a little
read,
I
lessons.
I
New Zealand. During that time
I
dried
fruit,
effort. In
my
gave up the Spanish
My ears grew red and sore from contact
with the damp pillow. Before light on the third day the north-easterly moderated to
twenty- five knots.
I
slept
deeply for several hours, then shipped
The wind
gusted to gale
force several times over the next four days as the
wind backed
the drogue and set a course to the south.
round
to the north. Before this latest trough passed overhead
had spent the previous week of the passage 45° and 48
and
still
south latitude;
sailing east
I
between
now was well below the iceberg limit I
being pushed further south by the north wind.
The weather grew colder. The sky was still grey, but the sodden woolliness cracked and
went
still.
I
watched the block-like
jumbled around the boat and wondered 48
seas
how drift ice would look
Miles Horde rn
among them. When sharp creases after
as it
I
reefed the mainsail the fabric folded into
had when new. I warmed my hands on the kettle
working the
After four days
sails. I
was
at
When
and backed into the west.
Then the wind eased wind and seas steadied I
south latitude.
52
the
My mood was bright: New Zealand and Chile
poled out the genoa and ran north-east.
had passed the midway point between and, as
saw
I
simply out to I
would
I
sea.
was
now
sailing
As things turned
towards Patagonia rather than
was the furthest south
out, 52
on the voyage. It didn't have a great significance at it was just a point on the chart half-way across the ocean
sail
the time;
where
it,
I
changed course and
ate a panful
of corned-beef hash.
My journey
to this point in the Southern Ocean really began many years before I voyaged into the Pacific. In the English summer of 1984 a friend and decided to run away to sea, as one I
does.
We
rigged
as a
in a well
board. I
We
were nineteen, and none too smart.
sixteen-foot
open day-boat
ketch, and the spars
on the transom and could be replaced by
Our intention was
think this was
friendship was
bought
to
sail
for Africa
(I
can't
a Seagull
be
a strict
demarcation of
out-
certain, but
my idea). My companion was called Bill, founded on
a
The hull was fibreglass, were pine. The rudder was hung
in Falmouth.
and our
roles.
I
was
responsible for having hare-brained ideas, and for breaking things; Bill
to
goodnaturedly repaired the things
tame
my
though, and
romantic excesses.
we
My
I
broke, and generally tried
navigation was accurate,
arrived neatly off the Brest Peninsula after a
thirty-six-hour passage across the English Channel. in the river at
Over
We anchored
L'Aber Wrach.
the next six weeks
we
followed the French coast south,
intending eventually to reach Spain and Portugal and so cross the Strait of Gibraltar.
On
the southern part of the French coast,
between the Gironde and the Spanish border, the
49
coastline
is
an
Sailing the Pacific
empty
of dunes. The
stretch
then you reach
homes
here, a
few
was off Contisplage
is
we became
in breaking seas,
hoping
between two
a light.
and
that Bill
intended to spend that night the west and
a naval firing range,
is
Contisplage. There are holiday
clubs, a stream enters the sea
retaining walls, and there It
section
first
named
a village
at sea,
got into trouble.
I
nervous. Foolishly, to enter the stream
boat was pitch-poled in the
surf,
We had
but the wind was strong from
we
closed the shore
and find
shelter.
The
throwing the two of us into
shallow water. Both masts were destroyed
as
the boat
went end-
over-end, and part of the foredeck was ripped from the hull it
as
was driven into the hard sand bottom. Rather disoriented, we
dragged the swamped hull up on to the beach, then searched the
waves for our belongings,
and stared blinking
at
as
up from
their towels
and received
faithful help
sunbathers
sat
us in astonishment.
We lived on the beach for five
days,
man named Louie. Bill made two new masts for the boat, and we were able to replace most of the things we had lost. From Contisplage we sailed to Biarritz, then on to the Basque coast of Spain. But the summer was coming to an end now, and the weather was changeable. It rained a lot. In Santander we decided to give it up, and sold the boat to a dapper man in a from
a local
sports car. I've never
tered
little
been able
boat out for
a sail,
to picture
him
and suspect he just
taking that batfelt
sorry for us.
From Santander we caught the ferry back to Plymouth. The voyage we made that summer was inspired by Edgar Allen Poe's novel The Narrative ofArthur Gordon Pym of Nantucket. Poe's yarn
tells
of two boys, Arthur and
drunk and run away
to sea in an
into an alcoholic stupor, are carried away. his
and the boat
The boat
comatose friend to
well, though.
The boat
his friend
open
is
run
get
The
sails
caught in
a gale.
the seas. Arthur lashes
expecting the worst. All
down by
a
is
passing whaleship, and
the boys are resuscitated with flannels soaked in hot
50
who
falls
swamped by
a ring-bolt, is
is
Augustus,
boat. Augustus soon
oil.
Both
Miles Hordern
make
home
it
and
in time for breakfast,
their parents are
none
the wiser.
On
voyage Augustus dies and
a later
Arthur
on
sails
into Antarctic waters, further south than any
The sun
ship previously.
calm. There
is
eaten by maggots, but
is
no
is
The ocean
surprisingly strong.
ice in sight.
The temperature
is
and the
rises
current sets to the south. Close to the South Pole, Arthur discovers a temperate land peopled by black natives
who
speak
Arabic. His crew
is
manages
canoe and continue towards the Pole. The sea
to steal a
temperature
last
rises until it scalds his
more quickly
ever
butchered by these Tsalalians, but Arthur
white curtain and the canoe
inside a
hollow
hand.
The
to the south. Finally,
current carries
swept over
is
him
Arthur approaches the a vast cataract,
earth.
Poe's fantasy about the
South Pole was written
in
1838,
when the far South was the 'final frontier' of global exploration. The exact dimensions of Antarctica were unknown, although stretches
of the icy coast had been encountered. Poe's story was
partly inspired
had reached
by
real discoveries. In
a latitude
February 1823
a sealship
of 74°!$', nearly two hundred nautical
miles further south than any previous voyage.
The
captain, James
Weddell, recorded with astonishment that 'not a particle of ice of
any description was to be
and serene
.
.
.
He
The evening was mild
our carpenter was employed in repairing the boat,
and we were able to make Weddell
seen.
sailed to
several repairs
on
sails
and
rigging.'
within 855 miles of the Pole, and saw no land.
observed a south-setting current of thirty miles within three
days,
and calculated that the sea temperature was probably
rising.
Weddell believed the South Pole to be open water.
Poe was determined
that the earth should reveal
secret before planetary exploration
came
one
to an end, so
he
final
also
known as 'Symmes' Hole', Symmes of Ohio, who resurrected
tapped in to the hollow-earth theory the creation of John Cleves
the medieval notion that the earth was hollow, and
5i
open
at
both
Sailing the Pacific
Symmes supposed an opening
poles. at
four thousand miles wide
North Pole and six thousand miles wide at the South Pole. Symmes' Hole was a drawing-room joke throughout the 1 820s,
the
but widely publicised.
He
sent
throughout America and Europe life
in support
'institutions
of learning'
which he pledged
his
of the theory that the earth was 'hollow and inhab1822 he petitioned the
itable within'. In
exploring expedition to five votes
to
a letter in
test his theory.
US
Congress to send an
Symmes
received twenty-
of support.
Edgar Allen Poe was not the first to speculate about polar openMargaret Cavendish's Blazing World, published
ings.
de Nicolas Klimius
is
an account of
a
frippery concerns a
salts
known
as 'Fiddler's
and fly inside the and
and
are transformed into gulls
where they enter
a
One
related piece
of
myth. Nineteenth-century mariners
sailor's
Green', only accessible
to sailors with fifty years' experience at sea.
old
Voyage
journey from the North to
the South Poles, via the centre of the earth.
believed in a paradise
in 1666, des-
The eighteenth-century
cribes a journey inside the earth.
When they die,
fly to
these
the South Pole,
hatch spinning with the earth's revolutions
Green has pubs on every corner
planet. Fiddler's
free ale, tobacco, steak pie
and plum
duff.
we are already living inside a hollow earth. Their leader, Cyrus Reed Teed of Utica, New York State, drew inverted maps of this inside-universe. The The American Koreshanity
sect believe
outer world was destroyed in an apocalypse, and the few sur-
made an
vivors
epic voyage to the South Pole in order to gain
sanctuary within.
world, and our
The
last
far
Below
the fiftieth parallel
on the
passage.
The wind
sun was strong;
when
the spring
I
south
memory
I
is
both the gateway to the
of the
enjoyed some of the
stayed in the west for
finest
many
could wear shirt-sleeves on deck
wind was
light.
The
52
new
old.
weather
days. at
The
midday
cockpit was always dry. But
Miles Hordern
I
was
gales
distrustful at first,
would soon
weather could be
gloomily predicting that the rain and
return,
good
as
determined not to accept that the looked.
as it
I
on, and refused to wear sunglasses. But
held through the
morning,
was obliged to accept
I
The seas were slight, oily in the sun: a slick
the boat.
when
hat and jacket
the fine weather
my good
luck.
the water a bluish green, the surface a little
of heavy, calm water seemed to surround
opened both hatches and
I
my
and continued the following
night
first
kept
all
the locker doors, and let
the cool breeze flow through the fetid confines of the cabin.
took
my
a saltwater
teeth.
I
Some of the
my clothes, brushed
bath in the cockpit, changed
my remaining apples,
counted
carrots tasted
of
diesel.
I
oranges and potatoes.
Three butternut pumpkins
were dusted with a light mould on the outside of their thick skins. 1
placed them, and the carrots, on the cockpit bench and re-
crossed the
fifty-first parallel,
my
vegetables drying in the sun.
This was an easy place to be.
The
westerly breeze continued for three days and
steady progress to the north-east, the
genoa poled out. But during fail. I
the
was kept awake
sails
collapsing;
till
wind on
I
made
the quarter, the
that third night the
wind began
the small hours by the crash and jar of
many
times
I
climbed to the deck to make
small adjustments to the course or rig, but nothing worked.
2 a.m. the
wind died
to
altogether.
I
furled the genoa,
At
and dropped
With the main lying all over the coachwoken by it flapping if the breeze returned. But
the mainsail to the deck.
roof I'd soon be I
slept
longer and deeper than
passage,
and woke long
I
after the
had so
far
on
sun had risen.
the three-week
The
mainsail was
not even twitching on the deck. There was no cloud in the
and not I
I
felt
a breath
sky,
of wind.
drugged and
stupid,
unaccustomed
to such a
deep
sleep.
some time on the cockpit bench, trying to adjust to a where the sun was now burning my neck and the sea was
sat for
place
smooth; most of
all
I
needed
to adjust to the silence,
53
which was
Sailing the Pacific
complete except for the
slight
sounds of water moving against
the hull as the boat repeatedly lifted and eased into position the sea.
My
was
but the boat's gentle movements gave the
sea
flat,
was
flat
on
impression that morning had been that the sea
first
in relative terms,
compared
to
ceding weeks: for most of that time, had
over the pre-
state
its
dropped the
I
as to
prevent
sails
and
would have
so taken the balancing force out of the rig, the boat
been thrown around with such force
The
to this.
lie
me
standing
And even today, when the breeze was imperceptible and
upright.
commounds
the surface of the water without a ripple, the sea was not pletely
flat. It
never
As
is.
I
sat in
appear in the water, gentle
Those lazily
that
the cockpit
humps
it
and subsided.
to lean, then flop
back upright. There was no pattern to the movement of
up and down, very
slowly,
slightly.
One
feature of
calm waters in mid ocean
denly becomes such that
slight
that swelled
formed beside the boat caused
the sea: the water was simply going
very
saw
I
you can
see
a
at
any one time
is
so obviously con-
The wind might have
but somewhere to the north there's
and elsewhere
from other
that the sea sud-
very big place; the tiny stretch of water
around you
nected, a part of something vastly bigger. failed here,
is
a gale.
places.
When
You can
a steady trade,
calm, the sea becomes a messenger
feel these forces transmitted
through
the water from far away, as bulges and swellings spread over the surface
and push the boat sideways; you can
latitude gale
own
and the
erful in a
dead calm:
quality, a sense
when
still
The
sky.
the water
is
both the high-
same time
tropical trade, at the
breath feels intrusive in the
feel
sea
smooth
it
that
your
most pow-
is
has a global
of there being just one planetary ocean that
it is
impossible for the sailor to ever truly cross.
The
sea always has shape, but the shape
describe
when
it
of water
forms and reforms so quickly.
I've
regular lines of swell lying uniformly across the
one does
at
is
difficult to
seldom seen
open ocean,
as
the beach. Sometimes, far offshore, running before
54
Hoy d em
Miles
strong winds,
I
look sideways from the cockpit and get
view along the bottom of the trough of hundred metres or more. But in neat lines.
The peaks
you look
any
dis-
at different
at different stages, so that
one part of the wave which
there's usually
for a
Waves don't come
of the peak are building
they break, they do so
rates; if
unusual.
a clear
wave
especially are hard to trace for
tance. Different sections
ever
that's
a single
when-
is
burst-
ing forwards in white water, given a strong
enough wind. As the
peak passes beneath the boat and you
are for that fleeting
moment high enough
view out over open water towards
to get a
the horizon, the swells don't present themselves in ranks march-
From
ing towards you. to
be patterned in
the deck of a small boat the sea appears
of interlinked crescents,
a series
like fish scales,
each one independent and surging forwards in bursts, then
back
falling
as its
neighbour temporarily takes the
lead.
The wave
pattern can appear random, especially from a viewpoint that rarely sees the a stretch
whole
picture; but
of ocean from the
crest
when you do of
catch a sight of
a sea, the fish-scale
waves
marching forwards, autonomous but arm-in-arm, you see there
is
a single, repeated pattern at sea that binds together
that
thou-
sands of square miles of water.
The
pattern of the waves
but in fact
mind
it's
not what
I
is
a part
see
the shape of the ocean.
first I
of what gives shape to water,
when
look
at
I
try to capture in
waves from
point of view: the size and shape of the sea strength and sea state, to steer.
The waves
how much
sail
tell
to carry
carry information
I
my
a practical
me
the
wind
and what course
need, but give only a
limited sense of identity to the larger world of the sea.
A more
lasting
the horizon.
image of the shape of the
The horizon should be
fixed geometrical form,
only
as a flat disc.
lasting than
appear
sea
is
the outline of
a very simple shape:
and the sea from
a
it is
a
boat should appear
Perhaps the outline of the horizon
is
more
any other image because sometimes the sea does not
as a flat disc.
55
Sailing the Pacific
As
the cockpit that morning, just north of the forty-
sat in
I
ninth
with the
parallel,
slightly
on
bulging
a
had sharp edges.
sea,
seen pentagons and octagons
I've
most often the ocean
on deck and the boat moving only the horizon on every side of the boat
sails
shaped
is
as
was today,
it
tilted
along a broken
and
to the surface
it
slopes even
axis;
not
it's
contours
fluid
when
uniform
a
shift
The
calm.
the boat's
No
meadow
if I'd
like the isobars
I
the passage
this trick
of perspective from disc
flat
of
would probably have done
I
reach a point on passage, usually
ever doing
when
so,
and just accept
it
In the calm
I
cranked up the table baskets.
the
I
way
spent
I
as
it
must
be.
But
given up hope of
conform
at
the water. Instead,
I
and scrubbed the vege-
siphoned water from jerry-cans into the main
and
filled
it
with
had learnt to accept
man
I
spent the day
water around the boat
skins. After three
that the sailor,
of the true shape of the a
paraffin.
shifting, swelling
with dust and rotting onion
sees very little
the ocean
time staring
stereo, cleaned the toilet
I
housework, and the littered
days of
appears to be.
it
less
I
vision and
first
cease to care if the sea does not
tank, cleaned the stove
in the south
I've
head,
forced myself to
this:
when
my
my
In the
sea.
perceive the ocean according to the rules of how
was
looked up the
towards the sun, and could trace
blinked once or twice and shaken
again been surrounded by a
in
is
shadow downhill.
doubt
could have pushed
I
rectangle
slope, as creases swell
and mingle,
of an evolving weather map. From the cockpit slope of this oceanic
with
The ocean
the long sides at right-angles to the rays of the sun. has four corners, and
but
at sea,
as a rectangle,
sea.
I
from
weeks
his boat,
picture myself
on
stumbling about, holding back-to-front
binoculars to his eyes, trying to see the world.
I
tell
myself
I've
read the pattern, I've seen the fish-scales marching forwards across a rectangular seascape,
discovery.
At the same time,
sand metres deep, of which
and I
sail I
I
hold
know 56
this close as a
cherished
blindly over waters five thou-
nothing.
The
sailor
is
a
Miles Hordern
who
surface-dweller,
understands surface patterns.
see the
I
ocean in only two dimensions, and kid myself I've seen and read the global forces stirring deep below my feet.
I
remember the very first time I stepped onto
can't
its
a sailing-boat.
probably wasn't an event that was imbued with great
It
cance
at
the time.
was always
my
a
Channel
when he came
dinghy in the garage
we went
childhood
signifi-
My father was born in Jersey and lived on the
he got married,
island until
shape
to stay
at
to England.
There
home, and every summer of
with
my
grandparents in the
Their cottage was on the beach beside the
Islands.
slipway at Le Bourg. There was always a dinghy in the garage
We launched
there, too.
bounce the a
trailer
it
from the slipway
at
high
or could
tide,
over the smooth, round stones beneath the
couple of hours either side of high water.
A mile offshore there
were two Martello towers, Seymour and Icho, and we the area between the towers
— and
the beach.
ish green.
On
It
was usually
castles, as
I
sailed in
thought of them
a tranquil area, the sea a
clear days the bare coast
twenty miles to the
brown-
of Normandy was
visible
east.
own way
In their
— or the
these
in. The The sea-bed
were some of the more dramatic range here
waters I've sailed
tidal
at springs.
shelves only very slowly
is
high, twenty-five feet
and
is
strewn
with craggy rock formations and unlikely pinnacles. At high only
a
gulls.
But
Martello towers filled
There was at
tide
few rocky peaks appear above the water, stained white
from the stream
slip
is
with
low
at
dry,
tide the sea-bed as far out as the
except for rock pools and a salt-water
kelp.
sufficient
water to
sail a
dinghy for about four hours
the top of each tide. Taking great care to avoid the drying
rocks,
you could
much
care,
domes break
and
sail
for a
little
at half tide
longer than
watched rock
this.
spires
I
never took
and granite
the surface. Bouldery hillocks, covered in gulls, slid
57
Sailing the Pacific
from behind the
If
sails.
too long, which
I
forgot the consequences of staying out
managed
I
to
do with alarming frequency, the
dinghy ran bumpily aground on some rock half a mile offshore,
and
had to wade
I
home up
my
and kelp flowing round me.
I
never saw anyone
a child's
mind, took
it
towing the dinghy behind
thighs,
doing
else
to
the salt-water stream, the ebb tide
be the
this
but
by some
still,
norm with
sailing: if
trick
you
of
stayed
out on the sea long enough, a hidden landscape rose from
beneath the water
Apparently,
around the boat.
all
Christopher Columbus saw
Caribbean in 1492
when
I
voyage to the
re-creation of the story of Jason and the
as a
Argonauts, with himself In fact,
his
Jason and
as
Queen
Isabella as
read accounts of the voyages of the
Medea.
Age of Dis-
covery which brought Europeans into the Pacific for the time,
I
found
that
with child-like
Columbus
first
wasn't alone in associating sea travel
fantasies.
Sixteenth-century
sailors inherited a bizarre
view of the world.
Renaissance Europe was awash with stories about the ocean and
of sea-crossings such
of Jason and the Argonauts. Another
as that
popular collection was the Thousand and One Nights, which
who survives the most and returns home time and again
include the voyages of Sinbad the Sailor,
remarkable experiences
at sea
with unimaginable wealth.
The cartography of preceding sailors
might not only get
chance to
fulfil
human
Both the Cotton south, raised
Map
centuries raised the stakes:
rich, but
were competing
for the
destiny and locate the terrestrial Paradise.
and the Catalan Atlas show Paradise
up on great mountains or on
a vast
in the
continent that
circled the southern part
of the globe. Medieval theologians
believed that Paradise was
somehow
separate
world. Isodore of Seville saw the barrier
Venerable Bede believed
it
to
from the known
as a wall
of flames. The
be an impassable ocean: to arrive
58
Miles Hordern
more than a physical journey - it required an act of baptism. The sailors of the Age of Discovery seemed best placed to fulfil the quest. They could now cross the burning seas at
Paradise took
of the equatorial doldrums and navigate the unknown Southern
Ocean beyond. The baptism of sea travel would reveal the last and greatest prize to be found on earth. Another feature on medieval maps was Ophir, the biblical land of Solomon's gold. The quest for Ophir took the Spanish sailors
Mendaria and Quiros across the
Pacific three times in the
sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries, and gave a
Solomon landfall
Islands.
On his final voyage in the Pacific
name
to the
Quiros made
south of the Solomons in 1606, and believed he had
found part of the coastline of the mythical southern continent; he
day Vanuatu. Quiros described
w^as actually in present
place as Eden, and
larger than even the wildest estimates,
as all
Europe and Asia
The
navigator
hundred
souls
A
...
fifth
summoned
his
from three
ships,
'as
this
great
part of the Terrestrial Globe.'
crew before him, some three and founded the Order of
Knights of the Holy Ghost, in which every one of them was included. to the
He named
whole region, from the
the
South Pole, Austrialia del Espiritu Santo. The
rich in emeralds, sapphires
cinnamon were
The his
and
chrysolites;
rivers
were
nutmeg, pepper and
plentiful.
fact that
Quiros drew on the idea of the Holy
choice of name
as a
tropical islands
is
not
a
Spirit in
coincidence. Quiros saw his Austrialia
land of the future, a Paradise belonging to the final stage of
history.
Spanish explorers often had
theologian Joachim,
Abbot of
this idea. It
was linked to the
Fiore in the late twelfth century.
a third and ultimate era on Earth, the Time of Holy Spirit, when all races would live as one and the word of God would reach every continent and island. Christopher Columbus invoked the name of Joachim with each landfall and
Joachim foretold the
claimed that sea
Holy
Spirit.
travel
Many
was
his
response to the influence of the
Spanish explorers saw their voyages in the
59
Sailing the Pacific
same
light, as part
human
of a Joachite push towards the
Quiros founded the of the South
trees
last
and perfect
age. city
New Jerusalem among
of
He
Seas.
the palm would be human-
believed this
homeland. The long voyage back to Paradise had
kind's final
been accomplished.
When
I
more than
read about the
Age of Discovery, what impressed me way that navigators
the voyages themselves was the
simply imprinted their lines they found.
own
For the
mental geography onto the coast-
European
first
was an ambiguous concept. The
'place'
fixing their position and,
I
sailors in the Pacific,
difficulties
of accurately
something about the
like to think,
men to
very nature of sea travel and water, allowed these
find an
imaginary landscape.
I
sailed north-east over the
next three weeks, slowly climbing up
the parallels of latitude. There were
north-west wind was
a steady thirty
were two short calms, sea
was
still
more than
a
These were and
really the
the sky blue. Often,
when
had pictured
I'd
this part
with imaginary way-points.
degrees of west longitude would
way
run.
I
across.
mean
I
A
hundred and two
was three-quarters of
Ninety degrees would be the
used longitude to calibrate
my way my mind
to find
of the Pacific in
I
and the
dripped in the
been struggling
at sea again, it
sails
only events in the second half of the
duly entered them in the log.
I
Earlier in the voyage,
filled
There
left to right. Inevitably,
grey cloud surrounded the boat and the
passage,
though the
at a time.
few hours each, but the
warm and
days the sun was
boiling cumulus rushed overhead from
drizzle.
gales,
running and the boat crashed around helplessly on the
Some
swells.
little
no more
knots for days
start
a distance that
of the
home
was otherwise
too great to conceptualise, and so divided the journey into more
manageable chunks. But when
I
reached 102
60
West
I
completely
Miles Hordern
failed to notice that
The
sea
an event of any importance had occurred.
continued unchanged, time was
of place was beginning to go hazy. global ocean, other,
and the part
no more
significant.
ronment: the wind, the
I
featureless.
was on was no
I
different
My world was my
state
of the
My notion
was simply on the
sea,
the
from any
immediate envi-
the features of the sky,
sea,
my books and language classes, darts, and the now wrinkled, apples cushioned in tea-towels
three remaining,
bottom of
the
at
the fruit basket.
When
I
bought the boat and
terest in the sea itself.
first
went
saw the ocean
I
than a place, which would in time lead
had no sense of direction on
land.
I
offshore,
as a
me
was
I
had little in-
road, a thing rather
to a
new home. I had
a drifter.
I
responded to
some animal instinct to migrate but, not knowing where to go, I went to sea. Somewhere across the sea, I hoped, I would find a home. But the further I sailed, the more I found that my attitude to the ocean changed. To drift at sea was impossible, drifting was oblivion. I've always had a course at sea: it's easy. Under sail, a sense of direction became part of the fabric of daily life. As I checked the compass, drew lines across the plotting sheet and calculated each day's run, place,
not just
a road.
I
to recognise the sounds
I
began to build
a picture
of a small hull moving through water, the
place with characteristics peculiarly
and shapes changed over time, not I
purpose: to
was on the ocean, sail
Going back ing
at sea
as a
noticed the colours of the ocean, learned
The
texture of waves and the shape of the horizon.
whenever,
of the sea
it
the boat towards
its
own.
distance.
was
my
a place
Its
sea
was
But wherever, and
where
I
had
a clear
chosen destination.
to sea, after a long time ashore,
was hard. But
stay-
was not. In the second part of the passage to Chile
found domestic
bliss for
the
first
a
colours, sounds
time in
my
life.
I
nurtured
I
my
boat with almost parental concern, listening for stray sounds and passing sleepless nights in bad weather.
61
I
began
a
programme of
Sailing the Pacific
housework when the weather allowed, scrubbing the the lockers beneath the bunks with
salt
water. Often
bilge I
and
watched
the sea, from the cockpit or through the cabin windows, and
was going somewhere.
found easy reassurance
that
largely uneventful
of books and hanging about.
I
life
I
It
had climbed north-east up the chart of the South
closed the coast of Chile,
enough.
I
had
I
had learned
started to feel at
By
a quiet,
the time
Pacific
and
that these things could
home on
62
was
the sea.
be
Four
made landfall on
I
December,
after a
the coast of Chilean Patagonia in
six-week passage from
New
mid
Zealand. Late in
morning I sighted Isla Guafo through the haze. It appeared as a mud-coloured hump, suspended above a strangely flat horizon. At sunset I passed very quietly to the south of the island, making no more than two knots in a failing southerly breeze. I
the
sat in
the cockpit, gazing at the thrashed and scrubby bush, the
breakers at
on the rocky
and the dimly
foreshore,
visible buildings
on the north point. With binoculars I explored and gullies, the way the land rose and fell, but never
the lighthouse
the ridges
moved. That night
I
sailed
up the Golfo de Corcovado,
landlocked gulf that separates the mainland from
The I
night was pitch black, without
thought
I'd
moon or stars.
Isla
a near-
Chiloe.
In the evening
be becalmed right here on the doorstep, but about
midnight the wind freshened markedly from the south. surged
down
the side-deck as
didn't sleep that night, fuelled
I
Foam
bore north-east up the Golfo.
on
a cocktail
I
of caffeine, nicotine
and racing excitement.
The dawn was very Chiloe, I
a
cold.
On my
left
I
saw the coast of
black strip hanging beneath wet cloud. In the cockpit
gulped breakfast between
shivers. Finally the
63
sun climbed over
Sailing the Pacific
the
Andean
foothills
my
right
saw
I
its
and burned the cloud off the Golfo, and on
on the snowy cone of Volcan
rays shining
Corcovado. I
spent that
morning running up the
coast of Chiloe in a
thirty-knot southerly and strong sunshine. Early in the afternoon I entered the canal that leads up to the town of Castro, and worked slowly inland through green water, surrounded by roll-
ing farmland. After three hours
Peuque.
I
approached the
The water was deep
final
bend in the canal, Punta and
close to the point
about ten metres from the shore. Large
slabs
I
motored
of weathered rock
my
jutted out over the water, shaded by pines. At the sound of
engine
a
dog ran out from the shadows and stood perched on the
nearest bit of rock, barking at the boat.
dipped and
on the ebb
its
head jutted.
was almost
tide the boat
dog's nose.
I
With each bark
its tail
cut the engine revs right back, so that
I
stayed here for
some
stationary, ten metres
from the
time, just listening to the dog's
bark resonate under the trees and carry over the canal, both pitch
and frequency perfectly
regular.
And
commonplace reaction I'd made landfall
this dog's
properly realised I
have
moment
a
friend
of sea
who
travel.
it
to
was only now,
someone
passing by, that
I
at last.
believes that landfall
She has
when I saw
more
sailed
the defining
is
than forty thousand
miles in the Pacific, and likens landfall to rebirth. She believes that the emotional forces released by the act of
with practice, be harnessed
with each
as
making
landfall can,
agents of personal development. So
be reincarnated
landfall she strives to
as herself,
but
minus some aspect of her personality which she has decided
to
ditch. If this
is
true,
was born again dislike
and as a
landfall
Zombie.
is I
akin to rebirth, then in Chile
I
don't even like dogs. In fact,
I
them very much indeed. But
I
kept the boat in the same
position for several minutes, the engine idling, the mast just clear
of the pine branches, captivated by the sight and sound of the
64
Miles Hordern
first
said
land
mammal I'd seen for a month and a half.
something
Normally
then?'
This was
I
how
throw stones it
evening. Landfall found
dogs that bark
much of
me
me
even
I
me.
at
that afternoon
and
stripped of any ability to discrim-
and each wonderful, inconsequential
inate, left
at
continued for
believe
I
Where's home,
'Hello, boy! Hello there!
like,
detail
of life on land
dumbstruck, with delight and gratitude, but
also like
a fool.
Once I got over my fascination with the barking dog I rounded Punta Peuque and got
my first sight
of the town of Castro
at
the
head of the channel. The road south of the town was busy with traffic at
the end of the working day.
in the dis-
A truck gunned its engine. found the deepest satisfaction listening to each one. A traffic jam snaked down the hill past
tance.
in
Horns peeped
some
I
excavations:
of dust.
I
workmen waved
traffic
through in clouds
waved back happily. Corrugated iron roofs were stacked
chaotically
up the
handful of figures
the
hillside, ablaze in first stared,
grinning absurdly by I
the
low
then smiled,
as
On the wharf a
sun. I
motored past. I was
this stage.
anchored just beyond the wharf. There was that
moment of complete moving.
I
The
air
was
heard birds and insects
all
around me.
boat, coiling ropes
weeks
that
being
afloat;
I
calm.
I
was actually
At
floating.
such delicacies are
came, and
I
took
sea there's
lost
a step,
moved about
I decided to sit down. Along the shoreline rows of
I
first
could I
perfect
feel
it
not
idled about the
and clearing up, aware for the
Sometimes now, when that never
thick,
first
little
time in
sensation of
in the greater motion.
compensated
for a
wave
the boat in a series of clumsy
lurches.
the water
on
stilts,
their cypress timbers
the evening sun. Yellow front doors.
along the ibis
The
silty
houses extended over
palafito
tide
skiffs
were
burning
a rich red in
tied to railings outside the
was low and fishing boats were scattered
beaches, lying heavily
on
their sides.
Buff-necked
wandered through the shallows, wood smoke hung over the 65
Sailing the Pacific
water
On the far side
like mist.
land spread over gentle
of the
hills.
took the dinghy in to the Armada compound and knocked
I
on the
office
The
the courtyard.
ing on
By
The
it.
at
I
I
to the tiredness that
comes
long passage, you
my body.
that are
workout
needed here on different
So
I
land.
When
you
first
else.
when you walk on
to muscles else.
step
on land
your body has changed. land.
At
sea
of balance and co-ordination
You can stand upright in a world
agility, a set
are
still
of physical
You have become,
in
working against
skills,
some
that aren't
small way, a
kind of animal.
swaggered through the Armada compound and, with
loping, ungainly stride, arrived in the street. to town.
A
steep
hill
passage of feet.
I
wandered
hardware store
past dusty
the
shop windows and into
a
of farm implements, eight-inch
full
and ranks of wood-burning
nails
a
led in
The wooden board-walk was worn smooth by
ferreteria, a
copper
with
lack of sleep just
and sleep while your muscles
You have an
roll.
and smiled.
felt stiff,
There's a peculiar glamour
realise that
employed nowhere
that heaves,
I
The
There's a swagger to your stride a
kept stamp-
I
after the sea.
something
serves to disguise
you've given
vibrating.
hadn't slept for thirty-six hours.
aches and pains sunk deep in
after a
humming,
land was
officers occasionally lifted their eyes
time
this
my passport and papers. Trim men with my documents while stood giggling in
door with
moustaches looked
the
and wood-
canal, pastures
stoves.
I
stood in the
centre of the shop, scanning this wealth of information, then
roamed down the the shelves.
A ings.
I'd
It
my fingers
running
as
through the dust on dry
as dust.
stairway led to an upstairs bar with convex floor and ceil-
empty room looked Later some back-packers
The windows bulged outwards and
ready to pop.
came
aisles,
forgotten about anything
I
sat
on
a stool at the bar.
the
in.
was an evening of
people
at
flux.
I
knew
that
I
could not be two
the same time, both Jekyll and Hyde, and that the
66
Miles Hordern
me would not survive. So I sat on my bar stool, else who had drunk too much beer, reciting
sea creature in
someone
talking to a silent
eulogy to the dying
sailor, his sea
powers of balance fading away sleep also, because a little
more
knew
I
with each
that
everybody
like
muscles atrophying, his
longed for
I
else,
sleep,
but
I
dreaded
night's sleep I'd
walk
and the only true thing
I'd
brought back from the sea would have gone. Landfall sively
is
always a mess.
about those
At
inevitable.
It is
sea
I
dream obses-
days ashore, picturing fresh citrus, beer and
first
seafood, chance encounters that blossom into friendship, conversations lasting
deep into the night. But
way. In Castro
I
I
ate quickly,
could go and do
my landfalls
are a
around
like
is
real.
still
hill,
like
I
I
come to the conclusion that them that way: it's the mess where you can blunder
new
sensation, following
were
on the back-packer
call
attracted
in front
me
-just so
like
a place
is
slept quickly
stay alive.
South America, and People
Land
major port of
a
top of the
again. I've
an ox, bouncing off each
any whim, and
Castro
it all
mess because
makes them
that
had conversations quickly, got drunk
everywhere quickly, and then
quickly, left
never works out that
it
little
through
attention in the town.
of the church, there sitting
trail
is
a
At the
windswept
plaza.
around on many of the benches,
One
picking grit from ice-creams and examining guide-books.
day
I
young woman from Baton Rouge,
chatted to a
She was blonde and
frail,
her
lips
Louisiana.
cracked by the sun. She'd just
spent two years in Bolivia with the Peace Corps, teaching nutrition. said,
She didn't look 'I
village
thought is
a
I
night journey just to did
it
at first,
I
was that lonesome.
four-hour walk from the nearest road.
to catch a ride in to town,
I
what she preached. She
like she practised
couldn't do
- you know,
call
where
Then you have
there's a telephone.
home. The
a gringa,
villagers
It's
an over-
watched everything
they were fascinated. At night
67
My
I
saw
Sailing the Pacific
window.
faces staring in at the years,
But
gotta get out.
I
beings can learn to
it
thought,
I
passed.
live anyplace.'
I
do
can't
this for
She was on
a short
before going back to the village for another two years.
my
from Auckland had been very
flight
After the spotlight of
life
alone
spent the
plaza, eating
few days
first
after landfall
told her
I
slow, delays in Papeete.
on the ocean,
this
nymity among the crowd of travellers was the best I
two
human break now
think given time
I
kind of anorest
of all.
hanging around in the
bowls of greasy seafood stew from
nearby and
stalls
taking long walks through the countryside to neighbouring villages.
only
had no firm idea of where
I
knew
February to
I
that
I
had two months
I
would go
available.
in Patagonia.
By
needed to head north and begin the long passage back
New Zealand through the tropics. Two months
very long time, given the scale of
this coastline.
world.
A maze of canals,
the south.
I'd
fjords
and
esteros
I
assumed
as far
my
as
I
seemed
in
on the
abstract, a
Even in Castro I made few plans. town for a couple more days, then sail could in one month, before turning round and life at sea.
I'd rest in
south
Horn
occasionally studied charts of the coast
passage over, but from seaward the land had
from
in the
or inlets stretches one
Chiloe in the north to Cape
Isla
a
Southern Chile
one of the most complex systems of waterways
thousand miles from
seem
didn't
boasts
distraction
I
the middle of
the
coming back. But as things turned
out,
I
was very lucky
in Castro.
Anchored
off the palafitos was a forty-five-foot steel yacht called Teokita,
belonging to
Maggy and
Ian Staples. They'd been in Chile for
over a year, and planned to spend the
summer
sailing slowly
south, drawing charts of each anchorage they visited.
would be included visiting
in a pilot
book
The
charts
they were writing for yachts
Chilean Patagonia, to be published by the Royal Cruising
Club Pilotage Foundation.
They
often invited
already gathered
me
on the
over to look
canals,
and to
68
at
information they'd
warm up by
their stove.
Miles Hordern
Maggy was
an earth-mother figure, always in an oiled woollen
on Chiloe. Her straw-
pullover knitted by craftswomen here
coloured hair was perpetually blown wild, and sometimes actually
had
a piece
of straw sticking out of
been
a thicket
of
strutting
around the deck in fluorescent
quila grass she'd
After a few days they suggested
from
it,
a bird's nest or
was fond of
investigating. Ian
sail
I
tights
and sea-boots.
south with them and help
with the survey work. Having two boats would make
and possibly
safer.
I
was nervous of this idea
Ian were from Henley-in-Arden: they tious.
On the
a south-westerly gale
and cold temperatures
would be delighted
We made Castro.
bling
our
The
cliffs
would be slow and cau-
other hand, they had a diesel heater on their boat.
As Christmas approached, rain
easier,
it
Maggy and
at first.
from the ocean.
in
brought heavy I
told
them
I
to tag along.
survey in Estero Pailad, a day's
first
sail
from
entrance channel was two miles long, between tum-
of red
which
inland lagoon,
Then
clay.
split in
up two velvet-smooth
the channel
opened
into a
wide
the middle distance and disappeared
valleys.
Olive-green grasses climbed from
water meadows to the skyline, dotted with copses of cypress and
We
rambling homesteads.
anchored off
of the lagoon. In the morning
so
I
went
that
Maggy and
hamlet on one side Ian re-checked the
We could see that the head of the estero was shoal,
entrance canal.
looking for
a
way
me
as
with
my boat drew less water. tow rope
a
if
I
didn't
Ian said he'd
show
come
in a couple
of
we climbed the ridge to the east and Maggy sketched the outline of the whole bay, and in the evening on Teokita we married the various surveys with the plan drawn hours. That afternoon
from the for the
ridge.
When it was done,
Ian snapped
it
up:
'One more
file.'
They had
stockpiled a huge collection of information
coastline of Chilean Patagonia over the year they
This was
now
on the
had been here.
kept in six bulging folders above the chart
Some of it came from
their
own 69
table.
experience, most from talking
Sailing the Pacific
and other
to fishermen
sailors.
The
crammed with
pages were
often messy sketch-charts and written descriptions of anchorages
French and
in English, Spanish,
sources had provided
When we
bay.
that the
our
most
own
Italian.
two very
Sometimes two
of the same
we
often found
arrived at the place in question,
drawing was the most
basic
surveys,
and Maggy drew
a
new
useful.
We
Teokita.
made
a tracing
made
When pos-
of the bay from the radar screen on
Otherwise she drew an outline by hand. Her drawings
were bold,
of often compli-
in black ink, simple representations
cated topography. cated
then
chart, so that the car-
tography in the finished pilot would be standardised. sible she
different
different drawings
Any depth
over ten metres was simply indi-
as 'deep'.
We spent the next two days surveying the southern part of the coast of Chiloe, especially the area
around Quellon. The main
channels on the coast were already well-charted, but even on the
Chilean Navy sheets most of the
largest-scale
little inlets
coves are either not surveyed, or the cartographer has
with kelp and rocks.
filled
and
them
We found that these bays were usually clear
of obstruction, and made perfect anchorages for small boats. But there was almost
no
visibility
beneath the surface in these waters,
and we entered each new place nervously, dead we checked it out by dinghy first.
A
few days before Christmas Ian gave
survey,
and
I
set
out for
a cruise
among
me
slow.
a
list
Sometimes of places to
the islands alone.
I
sailed
north-east through archipelagos of undulating farmland and
misty sand-spits. In the afternoon
The
island
was about
I
reached
five miles square. In
lagoon with fingers of
salt
Isla its
Buta Chauques. hills lay a
large
water cutting deep into the bush.
Getting into the lagoon looked
difficult.
The
published chart
showed kelp and shoal water across most of the entrance. I inched my way forwards up the canal, but saw no dangers. Open fishing boats were pulled up along the shore. The tree-line was scattered with crayfish pots, buoys,
70
and
skiffs.
In the distance a
Miles Hordern
man was
On
casting a net into the water
from the prow of
a punt.
woman, stooped, barely moving, was them into a wicker basket on her smoke rose from several houses hidden in
the opposite bank a
gathering
shellfish, tossing
Along the
back.
ridges
the bush. It sail.
was
A
a peaceful place,
and I decided to make
my survey under
tender breeze was blowing from the south and
I
reached
through rich pastures. Cattle, hock-deep in
silently to the east
the water, were lowing close
on
either side.
A
dozen or more
Peale dolphins plunged beneath the boat, driving the depth-
sounder
Southern Ocean
crazy. After the
held a sketch-pad cradled in one
of the
bay. After a
mile
I
was
it
arm and drew in
a
like a
balm.
passed a turquoise church tucked
head of a cove. Then the lagoon divided.
I
I
rough outline
furled the
at
the
genoa and
The water was shoal, the channel no more than Beyond this, a hook-shaped fissure curled gently
ran to the north. forty feet wide.
behind
a
low
hill
and ended
mud beach.
at a
I
anchored here for
the night.
From
the masthead
I
sketched a more accurate outline of
inner branch of the lagoon. Then, ridge to the west, chart.
The
anchorage.
pilot I
I
sat in
as
the sun
the cockpit and
book required
a
fell
this
behind the
worked up
a finished
written description of each
put the chart to one side now, and began to write.
hla Buta Chauques: 42
17'S 73
08'W
Approach Chile chart #609 shows two kelp patches (Boca del
Medio and Boca
Pajaros) in the western entrance
from Canal Chauques. although the area
may be
No
kelp was seen in 1998
shoal.
The approach should
be made with caution from the northern part of the
Canal Chauques using the bearings shown in the diagram.
The lagoon
itself
is
7i
relatively free
of dangers.
Sailing the Pacific
Anchorage The
The
eastern part of the lagoon divides in two.
entered through a narrow channel
northern branch
is
formed by
spit.
a
sand
and has
tions
a
The channel is
minimum
depth of
clear 3
of obstruc-
m. Anchor
at
the eastern end of this bay in perfect shelter. 10m.
Mud.
The wind
fell silent after
As the
dark.
tide
dropped the drying
mud-flats along the foreshore sucked and popped in the
stillness.
The sounds of children and dogs drifted across the water. Cattle moved heavily through the grass nearby. The moon sent silver light
through copses of manioc on the west shore. Beneath the
weak glow of the lamp,
as
I
formed each clipped sentence
dry language of pilotage notes,
spend the two months that
I
I
had
understood
how
in the
wanted
I
to
drawing charts
in these waters:
of places that had not been surveyed before. Without
Maggy and
would ever have put the rush of the ocean behind me. Alone, I would have just bolted south through the canals, as if still surrounded by monotonous seas. Ian
I
We
left Isla
don't believe
Year's Eve,
I
Chiloe in two boats early on the morning of
and
set a
Corcovado. In the afternoon waterfalls and bare rock appeared out of the haze. This was
my
slabs
first
of black, boulder-shaped mountains that nearly
Hours passed
changed islets
and
before
On
as
we
in the landscape.
we
reefs just left,
sailed
down
cliffs
to a line
filled a
charred
the coast, but nothing
That night we anchored in
a
group of
west of Bahia de Tictoc. In the morning,
we drew
a chart.
the shores of the Canal Refugio
ment belonging
of scarred
close-up sight
of the mainland. Scrub climbed steeply behind low
sky.
New
course south-east to cross the Golfo de
to the family
we came
across a settle-
of Juan Carlos Schydlowski. Juan
72
Miles Hordern
Carlos was a Chilean aristocrat and junk that
bond
He
dealer.
he'd been Forbes Salesman of the year 1986.
Two
told us
years later
he was arrested and sued by the Internal Revenue Service for $28 million in unpaid taxes. Juan Carlos spent three years in
before being released and ordered to pay this
point the family sold the ranch in
New
where they now
the forests of Patagonia,
jail,
fifty dollars in costs.
Mexico and
lived in stylish
At
fled to
beach
houses, adorned with tapestries and contemporary art but built
from driftwood, without journey by
sea to get out.
had spent the
last
electricity or water.
The
was
It
a
two-day
was twenty-one.
son, Allen,
He
eight years living in the forest. Allen was build-
ing an underwater temple for dolphin worship, formed of upright floating
On
totem poles chained
to the seabed.
the wall of one of the beach houses there was an aerial
photograph of this part of the the photograph and
we
used
coast.
Maggy took
this as the basis for
Bahia de Tictoc and Bahia Mala.
We made
Schydlowskis' Zodiac, and in our boats.
marked
on At the
centre, in
from
our chart from surveys in the
The whole
the largest published chart, but
as shoal
was navigable.
a tracing
Bahia Anihue, there
area
much is
was of
it
a perfect,
all-weather anchorage.
We followed the Canal Refugio south through the mountains, then crossed the brown waters of the Canal Moraleda to reach the islands in the west.
We spent two weeks here in the Archipielago
de los Chonos, making surveys and drawing charts. There were more than one hundred islands forming a broken jigsaw pattern, the last outcrops between the continent and the ocean. They rose dome-like and mellow on every side and stretched unchanged beyond the skyline. Occasionally we saw evidence of a nomad fishing camp in the trees, otherwise the area was uninhabited.
Many
of the
We made a
new
canals
islands
were not named.
our most
island.
Isla
satisfying discovery in the Archipielago:
Valverde
and an inland lagoon.
is
in fact
On 73
two
islands,
divided by
the published chart the lagoon
Sailing the Pacific
is
shown
We named
as a lake.
the
two
islands Valverde Este
and
Valverde Oeste.
Among easy.
But
these
low
wind was
islands the
clean and the sailing
The world we
there was a sense of unease here.
still
saw around us was familiar from the Chilean naval a
thousand tiny ways
but in
very different. Headlands were more
also
more numerous, reefs non-existent, anchorages protected and more open by turns. The discrepancy be-
prominent, better
charts,
tween the
islets
charts
and
reality lent this
landscape a fluid quality.
wondered if we weren't in some ways still at sea. The charts we made formed a trail that could be followed by others, a twisting line of knowledge through a far wider stretch Occasionally
I
of geography that
We was so
we
never saw.
re-crossed the Canal Moraleda in fine weather. light
it
barely filled the
sails.
The
boats were side by side,
heeling imperceptibly, tiny white rigs picked out
empty bowl of the Patagonian village
skyline.
The wind
We were
as
specks in the
heading for the
of Puerto Aguirre, which according to the most detailed
Chilean chart does not
exist.
The
network of craggy channels and
village lay at the centre
bays. Small islands
of
a
guarded
worn smooth and
every approach, their sloping rocky shores
glowing yellow in the afternoon sun. Children were gathering
and jumping from rocks into the
shellfish
sea.
A lane of crushed shells wound up the hillside between creaking
wooden
cottages, their pastel
paintwork heavily weather-
worn. Fuchsias drooped from window boxes and bushes of red estrellita
saw
spilled
wearing if
from gardens out into the road.
a grey-haired a light
man who was walking
cotton jacket and carrying a camera.
he came from the
but came here every clinic,
him
On
island.
He
summer
said
he lived
for three
that
we were
leaving call it
tomorrow
weeks
I
asked
him
to run a dental
When
I
told
for the mainland, he said,
the "Continent".
74
I
Puerto Montt,
in
giving the islanders their annual check-up.
'Old people here
the beach
slowly towards me,
The
ladies
pretend
Miles Horde rn
never to have seen
them up
give
Two
it.
When young people leave for the city,
they
for dead.'
days later
we motored up Seno
lagoon behind the deep-water port
at
Aisen, and anchored in a
Chacabuco. The entrance
channel was narrow, with barely enough water to stay
afloat.
caught a mini-bus up the valley to Aisen to buy supplies.
I
Maggy and Ian were waiting for a friend who was flying out from London: they thought they would be here two weeks.
move
time to
As
on.
It
was
Maggy gave me a drawing name for the williwaws, the
a leaving present
of the 'Chacabuco Monster', her
wind
swooped from the mountains and made you wake with gritted teeth in the middle of the night. As if to emphasise what a sobering influence they had been on me, I left the anchorage too early in the tide and went aground in the entrance to the lagoon. Maggy looked up from her drawing on
violent squalls of
deck and gave pened.
I
me
that
a characteristic
off in half an
I'd float
spent five days
wave,
as if
hour when the
making surveys around the Estuarios Quitralco,
Elefantes and Cupquelan. Ian had given
chart that they so close
through
I
would not have time
could recite
this
nothing had hap-
tide rose.
it,
a
to visit.
catechism to
maze of land and
me I
make
a
list
of places to
kept the
list
close,
sense of voyaging
sea.
The defining feature of these waters was the San Rafael glacier, which swept between the mountains, then crashed
into an
all
but
The only entrance to the lagoon was up the Rio Tempanos, which formed a fracture-line
landlocked lagoon. eight-mile-long
through the surrounding marshland. I
made
a chart
of Bahia Quesahuen, the key anchorage
visiting the glacier, tide,
then entered the river
an hour before dark.
It
at
when
the start of the flood
could have been
a
muddy
creek in
Africa, except for the icebergs floating in the stream: blue bergs, in
brown
water, surrounded by green bush.
75
I
had to weave
a
Sailing the Pacific
course and shoot small rapids between larger bergs that had
grounded
in the river.
As darkness
fell
a cool
glow of light seeped
When
around the rocky buttress that obscured the
glacier.
entered the lagoon the whole basin was
with moonlight
reflected
filled
from the brilliant white sheet of ice
that
from unseen
fell
mountains and seemed to continue across the water.
way between glowing
I
my
picked
I
on the west
bergs to find an anchorage
shore.
morning
In the
made
I
survey of the lagoon.
a
floating icebergs, but otherwise free
was
It
of obstructions.
full
A
of
boat
could anchor off any shore, depending on the wind direction. Before beginning the passage back north thirty miles out west into the
I
made
a detour,
mountains of the Peninsula de
northerly.
down the long and lovely Estero Puelma in a light The last fifteen miles were uncharted. At the head of
the
estero,
on the northern
feet
of a
two
islands, steering
Taitao.
I
ran
circle
narrow bay pushed up
side, a
of dark brown
hills.
I
tacked gently inland between
my butt and drawing a pretty bad chart
with
along the way. Behind the second island anchorage, and
I
dropped the
This was half-way.
to the
sails
a reef
protected an
for the night.
Tomorrow I would begin the passage north
through the canals to Chiloe, then up the continental coastline towards the turquoise waters and wet horizons of the South Seas. I
celebrated this turning-point with a subdued party.
lonelier,
been I
and
this place
seemed more
distant,
Land
than anywhere
is
I'd
at sea.
made
fact, as
I
following morning.
a late start the
was
to find out.
now blowing
The
thirty knots
Much
too
late, in
sky was heavily overcast and
from the north.
I
hoped
it
was
to find an
anchorage that night somewhere in the Estero Barros Arana.
was forty-five miles, with
little
It
prospect of finding shelter along
the way.
As the steep sea.
light I
faded
I
was
was cold and
in the Barros Arana, beating into a
tired, fingers
76
clenched around the
steel
Miles Hordern
hoop of the spray-hood.
I
carried too
much
hoping
sail, still
to
find an anchorage before nightfall. In the distance a long bay
cut
up
into
Isla
McPherson. At
its
head there was the prospect
But I wasn't going to make it. The bay was would be dark before I even reached the entrance. The wind moderated after dark. The rain grew heavier. I
of finding
shelter.
uncharted.
reefed the
of the less
It
down and plugged over towards the far shore When I saw the darker black of cliffs in the moon-
sails
canal.
night sky,
right
I
went about and headed
north-east.
I
worked
to
the north like this for an hour, then turned and ran back south.
Then It
I
was
did
it
much
again.
I
imagined
Soon
would have
to
do
this all night.
too deep to anchor in the canal. But
ern end of the second circuit rain.
I
there was a
I
saw
a
guy standing
dim
at
the south-
light close
just next to
me,
by in the his
head
brown cheeks wet and shiny. He was standing on the gunwale of an open fishing boat, holding the rail of mine. There was a heavy crunch as the two boats met on a wave. Another figure sat at the engine. They told me to follow them towards the shore. The water grew calm and the wind eased completely in the lee of the land. I dropped the sails and fired up the engine. Then I saw rock and bush very close on either side. We were in a channel. I followed a bit further, both boats crawling, trees moving heavily in the wind all around, but the water was smooth. A voice floated out of the darkness, but I couldn't catch it. The fishing boat came back and the man in the hood rattled my anchor chain on the foredeck to make the point very clear. I dropped anchor and cowled
in a blue
hood,
his
heard their engine fade, then be cut. I
woke
early the next
axe in the forest nearby. I
morning
climbed to the deck. The cloud
had stopped.
I
to the chok-chok
sound of an
Men were shouting and laughing ashore.
was anchored
in the
still
hung
low, but the rain
middle of a small bay on
Isla
McPherson. The entrance was so narrow that on the chart the two sides touched. To the east, forest climbed steeply to the ridge
77
Sailing the Pacific
away
line.
In the west the land rolled
grass
and scrub towards the shores of the main
in thickets
scattered
nomad
Half
shore.
along the pebble beaches, lying identical, painted
bow, and
a
name on
Negro, Darwin, Patagonia, Several
wet
men were
bundles of float sat
men
I
was
down
at
a
A number
middle of
They were
angles.
was painted on each
Pacifico.
flags.
on
repairing nets, sitting cross-legged pots, coils
asked
I
The
him and
if
One
I
told
night.
I
couldn't find an anchorage.'
I
went
any of them had been the
of them waved towards
third asked
from.
the
of warp,
'Hoy!' shouted one of the men, and
beside them.
the camp. Another shrugged.
said, rather obviously,
'Saco de huevas [dickhead],' said the third
'I
in the
the stern: Mariana, RwAmarillo, Aguila
in the boat the night before.
me on
and
dozen boats were stacked
awkward
around were heaps of crab
shingle. All
and
feet,
yellow above the waterline, red below, double-
ended, with very strong sheer. flared
boat of forty
a fishing
fishing camp.
rowed towards the
I
canal. Small, stony
around the shores of the bay were the small open boats
seen from time to time in the canals.
I'd
a
Anchored nearby was
quila
Herons pecked among
cays broke the surface in several places.
the stones.
of coarse
where
I
had come
'Bad weather
last
man, and thumped
the back.
started too
late.'
'Belotudo [dickhead].' I
spent that evening in the camp.
stretched
dripped
on
between
down
crates
and
trees
and
piles
thing was damp.
forth,
rain
had
set in
They
hammock
men
again and sat
around
sucking on
mate pipes or
Many had wet hair and
clothes; every-
of fishing a fire.
didn't
day - Sunday - and their makeshift
The
torn tarpaulin had been
almost everywhere. About fifteen
tending kettles over
a
posts.
A
gear,
seem
spirits
out of
pushing himself with
to care.
Today had been
a rest
were high. Someone had made
a net and was swinging back and
a pole.
78
The men spoke
in energetic
Miles Hordern
language riddled with slang
bursts, their
couldn't understand.
I
They were from Aisen. They came out to camp for six I
weeks
didn't
in the
summer,
at a time.
draw
a chart
mass of fishing boats
of the anchorage on
Isla
McPherson. This
my charts of the 'unknown'
around made
all
seem absurd. These waters were very well known, but the
ermen navigated without Several times that night
I
looked
two who had helped
to find the
among the faces of the fishers
me
asked, four different people claimed
an old
woman. Then was over
latrine area
boulders that led
been taking
the
a leak,
the night before.
it
to the canal.
and seen
my
When
I
had been them, including
camp shook with
a shallow rise
down
fish-
charts.
The camp, among
belly-laughs.
behind the Presumably
lights. It
my rescuer had
could have been any
one of them.
On 24
February I saw the ocean skyline for the
two months.
It
was three hours
after sunrise.
first
time in over
The water
Canal Tuamapu was an oily green, the wind was
light.
in the
Granite
flanked the canal, burning amber in the morning sun. It was a perfectly clear day. To the east the snowy cones of Mt Melimoyu and Volcan Corcovado were visible sixty miles disislets
tant,
the
both wrapped in
cliffs
of
the Pacific,
Isla
a
deep blue
sky.
But
to the west,
beyond
Tuamapu, the view stretched unobstructed over
my first view
of the open sea since
mid December. Through binoculars the
I'd sailed
into the
canals in
a
strong southerly from
watched the
slot
Pacific
which
I
looked
was sheltered
looked to be twisted,
As
I
sailed
beneath the
lifted cliffs
from
this distance.
up and sloping towards the of
Isla
I
its
The sky.
Tuamapu a long, easy swell Once clear of Islas Bajas
crept around the buttress of rock ahead.
79
by
in the canal.
of ocean across the entrance to the canal,
surface rolling but the waves inseparable sea
distressed, driven
Sailing the Pacific
the sea cut up cliff tops.
all
around and
a heavy, dirty
wind
fell
from the
sailed for three miles across troubled waters, the
I
boom Then
occasionally crashing as the boat both pitched and rolled. I
found the cleaner flow blowing up the coast and
set a
course
north-west, reaching in thirty knots of wind and foaming
me
Behind I
seas.
the skyline was a jumble of blue peaks and ridges.
tried to find Isla Anita, the place
where
made my
I'd
final
survey in Patagonia the night before. Anita was just another small island in the Archipielago de
Los Chonos,
entered through a rocky channel.
by low hills and scrub - it But as I'd drawn the chart something to me: the
last
wasn't a particularly attractive place.
anchorage, the final survey
scape that travellers take the liberty of making.
now among
I
meant
... It
was
a foreign land-
tried to find Isla
the peaks and ridges, a final farewell. But the
of the archipelago had melded with the mountains of the
islands
mainland.
The
sunk within Isla
sheltered
the night before, this bay had
one of those peculiarly sentimental bonds with Anita
deep bay
single
its
The anchorage was
it
land was a monolithic barrier, and the waterways
were impossible
to trace.
From five
miles offshore,
Anita had disappeared.
It
was
a
wild ride to the north-west.
protection in the lee of
Isla
gained some fleeting
I
Guafo, but otherwise
my
course lay
exposed to the wind and swell coming up from the Southern
Ocean.
I'd
forgotten
-
so quickly
- what open water was
After the short, kicking seas of the canals, the
here seemed everlasting.
merged height.
to I
deck
I'd
already forgotten
level in a seaway,
stood for
all
wave
roll
how
crests
and plunge
the boat sub-
foaming
that first day in the cockpit,
like.
at
head
watching the
ocean landscape gather and subside. In the afternoon the south coast of Chiloe sometimes faded into
sunset
I
was
fifteen miles
and altered course
to
view through the haze. At
offCabo Quilan.
I
run before the wind,
poled out the genoa parallel to the coast.
I cooked dinner and drank beer, beginning wayward symmetries of deep, open water.
80
to readjust to the
Miles Hordern
I
The
slept infrequently that night.
coast of Chiloe lay twenty
miles to the east, unlit and unseen in the darkness.
strong at
When and
my
back.
I
felt
keyed-up, breathless. Everything was
and unfettered, the freedom of an
fresh
thought of the canals now,
I
The wind was
I
all-night sea lay ahead.
remembered only
the twists
of finding an anchorage
turns, the shifty winds, the pressure
before dark. Sailing back onto the ocean seemed like escaping
from clear,
a
warren of underground
my bunk way.
caves.
The
night sky was vast and
borne through the hatch and down inside the boat. From
I
I
could see the
moved
constantly
unable to keep
still.
stars
was
It
wheeling
across the
companion-
between the cabin and the cockpit, a sensation that
I
remembered from
passages long before: a sort of paranoid restlessness, a reaction to
the soft winds and star-studded nights of tropical waters. As surfed northwards towards the tropical latitudes,
I
knew
I
that
everything was about to change, and the boat was going to
become I
a
very different place.
saw shipping that night, coastal
vessels
working between
Puerto Montt and the Pacific ports further north. Their rolled heavily
on the
swells,
and those coming from the south
crawled past so slowly. After midnight ahead,
coming
chain from the at
90
me.
straight towards tiller
to get out
I
saw more
The
lights
dead
pulled the self-steering
I
and pushed the helm hard
of the way.
lights
over, sailing off
headsail cracked as
the boat rolling and seas slopping over the beam.
I
furled
it,
Within minutes
the ship was beside me, a cruise liner gliding past at twenty knots.
Each cabin had
a terrace:
I
saw
tables
and sun beds run by
in a
blur of lights and railings.
Dawn broke sticky and bitter-sweet. The stickiness was on my face, around my eyes, on my lips and in my mouth. It was February: high
sleeping-bag night had
summer
I'd
in the south. I'd
packed away the heavy
used since leaving Auckland and the previous
wrapped myself
jacket had been enough.
in a blanket
The
on the bunk.
stickiness
XI
On
was something
deck
a
else I'd
Sailing the Pacific
forgotten about living
warm waters. It's a feeling on your a human cocktail of sweat and salt,
at sea in
skin and under your clothes,
and
grime
that boat
that's
generated even thousands of miles off-
shore. In this sense the sea isn't a clean or cleansing place at
you wear
and over time you learn
day,
all
it
around you to hasten
The
to pull
all;
closer
it
sleep.
sweetness was in the
air all
around: the distant scent of
land. Far to the east, as the sun rose, headlands appeared in the
granular light. valleys that
The land looked dusty,
merged with the
arid plains falling to shallow
Throughout
sea.
that
morning
land ebbed and flowed without conviction. Sometimes
from view. Later hill.
rounded
it
the
faded
crest
of a
But the smell of the land was constant throughout those
first
a ridge line appeared, or the
days of the passage.
the southerly
made long, downwind tacks
I
on the
At the end of each offshore tack the coast was
No
distant.
I
wondered
and baked a spicy
if it
grasses.
was
Then
I
of land that
a desert smell,
thought
I
and dawn.
thirty to forty miles
land was visible, but the smell was
that light but unmistakable tang
nose.
offshore, taking
quarter, usually gybing at sunset
still
present, just,
hits the
back of the
or savannah, hot earth
smelt pine needles, and later
cinnamon.
Poets write of the smell of the sea, but really the ocean has smell. Far offshore,
the sea,
salt
is
on
a
long passage under
Offshore, the single-hander
across an
sails
ocean of his
and bad breath. What people mean when they smell of the sea
is
coast, the sea smells
land.
But boats
of kelp, dunes, mangroves,
all
forest
just
is
is
you.
own
BO
about the
actually the smell of the coastline.
On
the
and farm-
of grease and
burning meths and kerosene. The smell on
petrol station forecourts reminds
me
of the
lasting impressions
I
And of course,
sea.
mostly sailed alone, the sea also reminds
The most
talk
are machines, so the sea also smells
bilge oil, diesel,
as I've
the sea
sail,
bland, and the only thing that smells
no
me
have of the smell of the sea are
tinged with dirtiness. In the Southern Ocean,
82
of me.
when
I
curled
Miles Hordern
up
to sleep
sea smells
I
wanted
to
my head with
fill
comfort thoughts. The
conjured up then were always the same: the great,
I
stinking port cities of the South Seas. Papeete,
where
fragrant
copra wafts over the filthy lagoon from the warehouses
Ute; Apia
after
cyclone Val,
when
at
Fare-
the harbour was thick with
rotting vegetation and dead horses floated past the anchored
and most of all Suva, the angry melting-pot of the
boat;
where the concrete and the after
air
is
sea,
I
stew of harbour
Off the than
this,
of the market drain into the lagoon
laden with the stench of the landfill
when
the tropics,
left
I
about the
floors
Pacific,
remembered
life
in the islands.
Navesi.
many
forgotten
I'd
still
at
Long
other things
clearly the steaming, tropical
coast of Chile the smell of the coastline was bigger
big in a global sense, a wider, weaker smell, the stink
of humanity sanitised by the surrounding aroma of continental
Twenty miles
land.
offshore, the sea smelt
lands, perhaps alpine flowers
The
of
from the Andean
forests
and
grass-
foothills.
waters off the coast of Chile are a scream for a sailing boat
heading north. Ocean forces power up from the south. sand miles out to
sea,
the South Pacific high pressure system gen-
which funnel up the
southerly winds
erates
A thou-
coast,
trapped
between the anticyclone and the Andes, while beneath the keel the cold waters of the Peru current flow towards the equator,
adding fifteen miles to
day's run.
a
An
ocean conveyor-belt
sweeps up the coast of South America towards the sailing boat, these
The for
route that
must be some of the I
was
now
strait
these
crew
Pacific after the
as a
Age of Dis-
in the Victoria, having
impression
this stretch
Pacific got
its
found
a
sailed
name because of
the
of sea made on the Admiral-General -
83
a
gateway
through the Patagonian peninsula from the Atlantic,
same waters. The
For
waters in the world.
following had served
European shipping entering the
covery. Magellan's battered
easiest
tropics.
a
Sailing the Pacific
name many of where
had cause to dispute while
us have
of Chile
in the ocean, but off the coast
able term.
followed
sailing else-
'pacific'
a suit-
is
When Bougainville finally escaped from the canals and
this coast
These waters
north, his crew sang the Te
are thickly
Deum.
embroidered with European fantasies.
In the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries there were
numerous
reported sightings of the mythical Southern Continent. Theo-
A
dore Gerrards was sailing off the Chilean coast in 1599.
blew
he saw
a
gale
and he was unsure of his position when
his ship off course,
mountainous land covered
in snow,
'looking like
Norway', which appeared to extend north-west towards the
Solomon
Twenty-five years
Islands.
the ship Orange re-
later,
ported sighting the Continent twice in the same waters while on passage from
Cape Horn
to the Juan
Fernandez group. So wide-
spread was the belief in a huge land mass in the South Pacific that
when Tasman
sighted
Land, believing
it
to
New
Zealand in 1642 he named
Staten
it
be connected to the island of the same name
south-east of Argentina.
The
Spaniard Juan Fernandez sailed
in 1576. After
one month
what he described ited
by white people
cloths'.
at sea
as a 'fertile .
.
.
This report was
a
course between west
Our Lady of Remedy Fernandez made landfall on
and south-west from the coast of Chile
in
and agreeable continent
.
.
inhab-
.
very well disposed and cloathed in fine
made
in secret,
and was contained
Arias Memorial, a highly confidential sixteenth-century
in the list
of
Spanish discoveries in the South Seas which was lost until the late
eighteenth century,
a printed
in a
when Alexander Dalrymple
London
Fernandez was generally
bookseller's.
observer, but this landfall
on an
straightforward fabrication.
One
reached Easter Island, almost
a
recognised European
as
is
an exaggeration,
possibility
hundred and
visit.
a reliable
'agreeable continent'
greeted with scepticism, of course,
first
discovered
copy of the manuscript, supposedly while browsing
is
fifty
that
usually if
not
a
Fernandez
years before the
His reference to 'white people'
84
Miles Hordern
is
not
as
far-fetched as
it
Many
sounds.
of the
commented on how pale-skinned
the Pacific
Europeans in
first
they observed the
Polynesians to be. George Robertson, master of the Tahiti,
remarked of the
people has
a great
islanders that 'This race
resemblance to the Jews.'
made
gested that Fernandez in fact
while yet others
of
Mu,
It
has also been sug-
landfall in
New
he reached the shores of the
insist
of
the Pacific's equivalent
Atlantis,
ship at
first
of white-skinned
once
lost
Zealand,
continent
home
to sixty-
four million inhabitants descended from Celtic wizards.
Even the normally note of ambiguity a
starchy Admiralty pilot
when
caution to navigators
area,
from the coast
from time
to time.
almost
to,
Where
the seabed
W, have been reported is
mentioned
may be
to
submerge
or rock, or to thrust a hitherto submerged peak
islet
passage
as a
no uncharted dangers, but the
warning
may be found
that dangers
up the coast of Chile was the
longer voyage back to erly
uneven, the effect of
or above, the surface of the ocean. Subsequent exam-
ination has revealed
My
lapses into a
'Several outlying dangers in the
it states:
to longitude ioo°
seismic disturbances, frequent in the area,
an existing
book
describing the waters west of Chile. In
New Zealand.
wind and Peru current
first
reports are in this area.'
much
stage of a
hoped to carry the southhundred miles north to the Juan
six
I
Fernandez Archipelago, then follow the outer edge of the South Pacific high north-west
February.
By
up
into the tropics.
early April the risk
in the tropics, giving
me two months
through the islands and get
It
was
now
late in
of cyclones should have
down
to
to take the trade
New
lifted
winds
Zealand before the
onset of winter.
The Juan Fernandez group a
south latitude of 34
.
is
For the
three first
hundred miles offshore
few days out of the
stuck close to the coast. Sailing along a coastline sailing elsewhere. Regardless
is
85
canals
different
of sea conditions, there
is
a
in I
from
quality
Sailing the Pacific
to inshore passage-making that to see occasional glimpses
each inshore tack, or
of the lighthouses
flash
more
clearly
night sky. a
when
At night the
coastal haze.
I
constant.
is
at
my
strained
I
coastline
was
was only possible at
the end of
eyes to penetrate the
easier to define.
Punta Corona and
saw the loom of towns and
The twin
It
of the coast of Chile,
Isla
I
saw the
Mocha, but
hanging
cities
in the
settlements of Corral and Niebla presented
wide, watery streak of light to the
east, a false
dawn. Later
I
saw the loom of Lebu and Concepcion, simple reflected images of
street lamps, headlights,
component
human But
house
lights
and neon, thousands of
parts spread across the sky as
one mass
reflection
of
life.
really the
loom of the
land was always there
loom,
similar, a physical
couldn't see any evidence of land,
sailed
I
up
loom of lights, but Even when I
the coastline, even by day; not the visible
something
as
a 'presence'.
it
was always
Land has
there.
an invasive quality that creeps over the waters beyond the coastline.
A passage
sided,
along any coast
bordered by
similar in this respect:
is
ten or fifteen miles offshore, land a
comfort to have
its
it
is
a
conundrum:
my home
so close,
and
it is
lop-
when unseen. From
even
a force that's present
habitat;
dangers, coastal shipping, inshore fishing
craft,
it
the
scenario that in your comfort you oversleep and
should be
but land has
doomsday yourself
sail
onto the rocks.
While
sailing in the canals, I'd felt the traveller's guilt
about
family and friends back home. In Castro, Puerto Aguirre and
Aisen
who
queued
to
make phone
had been waiting for weeks.
when I
I'd
I
calls in airless I
felt selfish
boxes to people
and irresponsible
heard their voices. But something happens to the land
leave shoal water, perhaps about five miles offshore:
really
touch me.
It
to
a featureless barrier in the sea.
It
becomes
cities in
the night sky.
and I
cannot
power
see the faces of loved ones any
smells of air-freshener,
I
as
is
more; land
loses the
best seen in the lifeless
loom of
can picture the land from offshore, but
86
Miles Hordern
feel little for
Leaving land the
it.
Auckland, was
difficult;
but
first
after that
time on the voyage, from I
with few
sailed offshore
regrets.
On the fourth evening out from the Canal Tuamapu gybe
at sunset,
which had been
I
did not
my habit over the preceding days.
Instead of putting in a long tack back towards the coast
tinued to
sail
north-east,
on
a
course that should take
Juan Fernandez group within course that was
now
a further
slowly taking
me
two
I
me
con-
to the
to three days, a
further from the coast.
no shipping. By dawn
saw the loom of no settlements
that night,
the next day the land was well
below the horizon, and when
looked
at
the ocean
I
only ever looked ahead.
sea for three days, but
it
seemed
properly begun.
87
I
I'd
that the passage
already
been
had only
I
at
now
Five
Waking up at sea is like a distant wave rolling towards, very weak
then into,
sciousness: a slight sense
somewhere on the limit of conof activity that might come no further.
But soon
all
your body.
It is
swelling
it's
and movement and I
sit
up
in the
It
bunk and is
rail,
around.
I
a
stare
up,
its
down the
A
cabin.
It
looks cold and
surfaces slippery with the
damp of
chipped white paintwork and
a plain scene:
is
once-varnished trim. grab
around, unstoppable, a rush of noise
first light.
dirty before the sun
night-time.
up
at first,
grubby tea-towel
wooden spoon has fallen onto
swinging from the
is
the
bench and is
sliding
take in these details without interest. First thing in the
morning I'm focused on something bigger: the oblong sky visible through the companionway hatch.
Dawn grey. as
I
twilight
the boat
east
wind
rolls,
to
barely established, the sky
can only hear
knots, a
the blades spinning just
form
erator begins to I
is
can see the top of the wind generator,
little
a
white
fast
is
enough
disc in the sky. In strong
whine and the pole a fluttering
hum:
lighter than before.
It
fin
dipping
in the south-
winds the gen-
vibrates in the gusts. Today,
the
wind
is
a steady fifteen
has eased over the
four hours, and the outlook for the day ahead
This preliminary observation completed,
89
an even, dark
its tail
I
is
last
twenty-
so far good.
need some more
Sailing the Pacific
concrete reassurance that
compass.
It is
From
way.
plastic
mounted
inside the cabin
well, so
look to the
I
The
glasses.
can see through the back of the
I
that defines
other problem
my whole
numbers over the the blurred
of
oil.
smeared,
is
a
a
hundred
thousand:
I
the one before. In hindsight
out and just remember that I
it's I
my
head pool
different courses over the
had no
Some of these
idea.
on end without
less significant
easy to round
was
all
the
like this;
than
numbers
sailing south-east, or
seldom generalised
three,
swirl in their
stymied. Figures are swirling in
But on passage no course seemed
at sea
code
steered, the sacred
numbers on the compass card
might have steered
But
need
really
that I've forgotten the course,
is
courses lasted only a few minutes, others for days
west.
I
purpose here. There have been so many
voyage to date, perhaps
alteration.
three
little light, it's
months, so many combinations of
last
moment I'm
as
I
bowl
small, the
numbers of the course being
the three
that for a
is
right, at the
bulkhead beside the companion-
compass bowl. But only just. There's
metres away, the dial
my
all is
in the
north-
couldn't stand
I
back and see that larger picture of the ocean where multiple wind-shifts, tacks line.
go.
Precision
A
is
and gybes have merged
something
it
had three hard
section of the voyage.
book.
to
form
cling to, a life-belt,
ten-degree change in course might be
three days ago and today. west:
I
believed
I
I'd
all
I
rhumb
won't
let
that separates
My course was not south-east or north-
digits, a I
a single
and
bar-code that governed each tiny
recorded each one pedantically in the log
imprinted
it
in
my
mind.
You sit upright in the near darkness and try to remember where you are going. Exactly. The course is the only rationale, here. Remembering it after This
sleep it
is
the process of waking up at sea.
means again learning
means
to care
about ten-degree differences;
re-establishing the pedantry that has got
you where you
and will some day get you home again. From where was lying on the bunk was facing the compass from the wrong side, looking towards the back of the boat. So
are,
I
I
90
Miles Hordern
numbers
the
I
had
exact inverse
its
remember were not
to
on
From
the figures swirling
my mind
arated themselves in
was the course
m
light
I
m
and
With
the small hours.
it
my
haunches
to get a
into sequence:
when
the boat
I
And
the
I
wave of anxiety
I
m
had
on
no
.
little
moment
the same
since before
This
self-steering the
was an even swing to either
felt
I
turned out the
last
of the course. Nothing had changed: the boat was the desired direction. this,
but
the bowl, three slowly sep-
fell
had been steering
compass swung around, but
began
itself,
the opposite side of the compass rose.
squinted, and pulled myself up on closer.
the course
I
side
sailing in
still
that
I
opened
realised
my
eyes
to subside.
watched the compass
for a short time, then collapsed
backwards
The wind had eased a little, but was still steady in the south-east. The seas were shallow and long. I lay still for a few moments, feeling smug. The passage had been
onto the bunk.
It
was going
Another day had begun.
At
well.
quiet night.
night, with a lee-cloth tied
bunk becomes was
a
a cot.
I
up
to
sun would need to be above the horizon for before the surfaces dried out. In
was repeated almost
and dampness
daily
at night,
baking heat through the
under
my
feet
place, the
climbed over the cloth. The cabin tioor
of moist dust sticky beneath
slippery, a film
m
me
keep
on the
warmer
a
my
toes.
The
couple ot hours
latitudes this pattern
boat, a nncro-climate of
dew
evaporation in the early morning, and rest
of the day By evening
would have caked
this sliminess
hard, the timber floor-boards
greying through broken varnish. I
But and I
walked it
to the galley.
My lips were sticky
was too soon to drink. The
down
stare
the
first
too.
my mouth
dry.
thing was to go on deck
empty length of the ocean.
stepped onto the engine box and through the companion-
way. As
I
pulled myself from under the spray-hood
9i
I
saw that
Sailing the Pacific
the sky was
The
still
my
lowered
first
mostly grey, but yellowing in the
east.
Then
I
eyes to the sea.
how
reaction was
cold the water looked, and
how
strangely-shaped. Small swells formed, seldom for long, then collapsed sideways, or back the surface was
wave. At
smooth and
dawn
they'd come. In places the
never broken by
a
the ocean often looked pocked, distorted, not the
Through the hours of darkI'd felt the simple rhythm of sailing down- wind in small seas,
same place where ness
a cycle
up
way
raised, like scar tissue,
a
I'd
spent the night.
of motions and sounds that was largely predictable.
mental image of the sea that conformed to
dawn I was
waves and troughs in sequence. But
at
when
place
looked out and saw
I
this: a
was
still
only half-light.
yet broken the horizon.
I
built
often surprised
where there seemed
be no pattern, where waves rose apparently It
I
rhythm, of
this
to
random.
at
The upper limb of the sun had not
could only see about
a
hundred metres.
Beyond that, both sea and sky were equally impenetrable. So what I saw of the sea at dawn was greatly foreshortened: I was sailing over a circular sheet of black water, two hundred metres across. In these conditions the
didn't tally
with what
my body
ocean was very hard to
had been feeling
all
read.
night.
It
Once
the sun rose and the horizon receded far into the distance, then the patterns of the ocean this
would again be
visible.
broad canvas to properly understand the
endless horizon
is
full
water around the boat
There
is
sometimes
a
of easy reassurance. that's
state
It is
But
of the
I
needed
sea.
The
the small area of
unknown.
period of lighter wind
at
dawn,
lasting
about an hour, through the transition from darkness to daylight.
On on
the preceding days of the passage this hadn't this
night
morning
I'd sailed
headsail
a lighter
breeze did establish
with the wind on the quarter,
downwind,
fed
come
itself.
a light
about, but
During
by the half-furled genoa poled out
92
the
number one to
Miles Hordern
windward. The out the
to the speed
dawn, to
first
did on deck that morning was roll would make only a small difference but I liked to make such alterations at
thing
of the genoa.
rest
of the boat,
I
It
my command
assert
the start of the day.
at
I
wind vane
the cockpit for a short time, adjusted the
stood in
steering a
couple of clicks, and watched the headsails wobble in the uncertain breeze.
Then
and put the
kettle on.
I
know
the ocean.
little I
set
I
about
the fishing line,
fishing,
but
went down
doesn't
it
into the cabin
seem
There was no refrigeration on the boat, so
fish.
to matter
on
hope of only catching small
used small lures in the
wanted no
I
more than could be eaten before it went bad. The fishing line is kept on a heavy plastic hand reel. Once the line is set I wind its end the wrong way round a winch many times. When a fish takes the lure the winch turns on its ratchet, making a loud clicking sound. I can he^r this noise from anywhere on the boat, and it carries sufficient importance to wake
me from While
sleep. I
waited for the kettle to boil
after setting the fishing line there
Dawn
was
I
ate dates.
a sense
Immediately
of anticipation.
good time for fish: I sat expectantly on the engine box, listening for the winch to click as the line ran out. When was
a
the kettle boiled toast,
otherwise
made
I I
When
coffee.
of
ate a breakfast
was always playing. Sometimes
it
I
had any bread
biscuits
I
made
and jam. The radio
was turned on most of the
day,
an endless cycle of news and analysis. I've never been so well-
informed on world events ocean.
By
tening for
took I
me
by
so that, if and
good
alone on a small boat in
news
when
I
had forgotten about
a strike
came,
it
mid lis-
nearly always
surprise.
times mahi mahi.
a
when
the second round of fish,
mostly caught
for the
as
fish like I
bonito or yellow-fin tuna, and some-
might catch one
fish a
day for
same period of time catch nothing. Dusk,
a
week, then
like
dawn, was
time, but a fish could take the lure at any time of day.
93
Sailing the Pacific
Occasionally the line went screaming out and the winch roared.
This meant something large was on the other end: usually the
hook came free. But a smaller fish, say a bonito, might only be heavy enough to turn the winch a few clicks, or
line broke, or the
sometimes just the one. So means, but in
its
context
it
it
wasn't a deafening sound by any
was quite unmistakable: the greased
clunk of engineered metal slotting into place. Whenever
sound
that
I
froze
on
And my
reflex.
very
first
I
always the same: who's that? Despite the obvious logic that a fish,
my mind momentarily
of thought: the winch it?
.
.
.
how
did they
.
.
The thought was
is
the catch,
of
on an
my
I
was
operated by hand
.
.
.
whose hand
is
and
I
.?
over almost before
had to acknowledge
instinctual level
solitude
it
followed the same dead-end chain
scrambled into the cockpit to haul in the
sea,
heard
reaction was
had
started,
even
after four
I
cleaned
months
at
hadn't acknowledged the reality
I still
on the ocean,
that
it
line. Later, as
since
my
most immediate con-
clusion was to assume the impossible: there's another person
on
the boat.
The
lighter air didn't last
again blowing twenty-five knots. rolled out a
few hours
was
on the engine box,
partial
shade here,
shielded the sun. As
I
refurled the half-genoa
the rig strained and the
earlier, as
spread loudly behind the boat. sitting
By mid morning it was
through sunrise.
I
had
morning companionway There
spent most of the
my head in
when
I
wake
the
the boat rolled and the spray-hood
beams of sunlight
flashed across the page,
I
book regarding the group of islands I would sight tomorrow morning. On some level, I suppose, I was just holding out for the single click of the winch that would announce a
read the pilot
visitor.
At the very beginning of the voyage, Auckland,
I
sometimes imagined what
94
for the first days out it
would be
like to
of
have
Miles Hordern
another person on the boat.
how
I
room
would sit, make
pictured where they
I
could rearrange the stowage behind the bunks to
Mostly
for their stuff.
about - practising
thought that
if
camera had helped ease the
could talk to
I
was to
remember
sail
It
across
it,
a real
person about the sea and
the passage
wouldn't have been
packers in Castro. But after the this idea again.
would become
first
And now,
difficult,
among
I
from
With
a friend
my
I
could
I
the backI
never
surfed north-west across it
was the
mind.
once went on
I
I
how
easier.
week of the voyage as
the Chile Trench towards the Juan Fernandez group, furthest thing
talk
loneliness).
even entertained the idea that in Chile
I
look for crew.
considered
could
Spanish, and, later in the voyage, French (even
talking to the video
far there
we
imagined the things
I
a
very long walk which required
we needed in rucksacks. We started off with packs full of items we regarded as essential, but over the first few days of the walk we both lightened our loads by up to a third, discarding things that on reconsideration we didn't truly need. suspect that when I go to sea alone something very similar us to carry everything
I
happens, except that what I'm discarding over that trip
is
emotions. If
the boat now,
would
I
I
drink; the food they
me
makes
On
the ocean
ings,
I'm
The
part of a
thought about having another person on
did so in purely logistical terms:
would
eat;
all
a ruthlessly practical
the water they
the space they
up. Sea travel reduces people to the things they sea
first
machine of
would
take
consume. The self-repression.
can simply blank out whole categories of feel-
I
because they contribute nothing to the ongoing voyage.
a survivor:
I
travel light.
navigator Juan Fernandez was
quisition in
Lima
in 1570,
summoned
before the In-
on charges of sorcery. Fernandez ran
Our Lady of Remedy, between the ports of Concepcion and Callao with such speed and daring that his crew
a small trading vessel,
95
Sailing the Pacific
named him
Brujo'
'el
tors believed this
the navigator's alone.
-
the wizard of the Pacific.
nickname was too
fast
inquisi-
and
passages were not possible by natural
that
means
Juan Fernandez persuaded them otherwise.
Three years
later,
running the same route
stood offshore in the vicinity of 33
wind
The
close to the truth,
to fetch
down
the coast, he
of a
latitude in search
fairer
Concepcion. Four hundred miles beyond the
Pacific coastline
of Chile Fernandez did find a lighter south wind,
and
group of uninhabited
his
also a small
islands, to
which he gave
name.
That same year Fernandez obtained establish a
colony on the
islands,
a grant
from Spain
and took possession.
He stocked
the bush-clad hillsides with goats and rabbits, and stuck
two
years before the isolation drove
the islands
became
a
him back
favoured port of
to
it
out for
to sea. Thereafter
call for
European
ships
bound north into the Pacific after rounding Cape Horn. Provided the wind was in the south, ships could anchor in a sheltered bay on the main island. Ashore there was fresh water, meat (thanks to Fernandez's rabbits and goats), and plentiful timber.
The
climate was temperate and the sea a steely blue. Better
the Spaniards were four hundred miles away
The Juan Fernandez group became for English buccaneers,
who came
and to dream of meeting
a
a
still,
on the mainland.
favoured watering-hole
here to careen and carouse,
Manila galleon
in the waters further
north.
In the spring of 1704,
as
the Cinque-Ports was
making final crewman
preparations to depart the Juan Fernandez group, one flatly
with
and
demanded to be on the boulder beach,
refused to continue with the voyage and
put ashore. a
He was landed,
with
difficulty,
gun, powder, shot, tobacco,
a bible.
months
a hatchet, knife
and
kettle,
Alexander Selkirk was picked up four years and four
later,
when
the story of his solitary
life
on the
island fas-
cinated Europe and inspired Daniel Defoe's novel Robinson Crusoe.
So was the castaway myth born 96
in the popular
imagina-
Miles Horde rn
of
tion,
a sailor, all alone,
surrounded by the ocean, learning to
survive.
The following morning soe, the
I
made
on
landfall
Isla
Robinson Cru-
main island in the Archipielago de Juan Fernandez. From
ten miles offshore the island
mark over mountains
hung
like
an inverted exclamation
Towering rock fangs and door-shaped
the ocean.
sky they seemed divorced from
bit so boldly into the
their foundations beneath.
I
sailed closer across a birdless sea.
breeze was dying and the boat shuddered
lower slopes of the island were
the
as
sails
flogged.
moonscape of eroded red
a
and perched boulders. At the summit, the
hillsides
crown of silver-green bush. Cumberland Bay was the only anchorage,
The The
earth
climbed near
vertically to a
island's lee.
sending
a
Groundswell crept around the
a
scoop in the
bay's shallow flanks,
A ribbon
heavy surf crashing onto the boulder beach.
of houses was just
visible
through the
spray, at the feet
of a string
of mountains and ridges. To the north the ocean stretched empty for tens
of thousands of miles. At anchor the boat
on
times heavily,
the day a sea-breeze set in, and the boat
heat-haze of the tropical Pacific to the north. At night in
my
here
bunk,
at
relax.
as if still
The
surf never stopped. Ashore,
island.
On
the boat,
I
I
spent
I
worried constantly
was impatient to explore the
This place was fraught with raw energy the boat 7
,
rowed towards the concrete wharf through
moored
I
rolled
could never properly
at
pinned somewhere nameless between the land and the I
I
under way. Throughout the days
the village of San Juan Bautista,
about the boat.
some-
rolled,
Once or twice during swung round to face the
the long oceanic swells.
a fleet
anchor
sea.
of open
They were painted white, the woodwork torn and scarred. The boat nearest my own was CmstAceo, dedicated to the lobster fishery which was the island's fishing boats
only industry.
I
in the bay.
landed
at steps
where the fishermen unloaded
97
Sailing the Pacific
their catch. Swells rose
and
five feet or
fell
more.
I
jumped onto
my
the slimy concrete landing, threw the inflatable dinghy onto
back and scampered up the swirling around
my
steps,
water chasing
my
heels
and
thighs.
The harbourmaster was you see them pulling the
trim and neat
- they
always were.
fishing boats
up the
ramps,' he told
me, 'you should leave within one hour. There's
a
'If
north wind
coming.' It
was
early evening.
through the
village.
strolled
I
The
island
down
the winding lane that led
had just got
its first
public tele-
phone booths, ultra-modern aluminium cowls beside the earthen road. There were few people about. In places the road was paved with worn bricks, but mostly
it
was
mud dried into deep runnels.
Pretty cottages stood back in gardens laid out with shells and
flower beds.
Beyond
this the hillsides
were scorched and bare
from erosion. At the western end of the
down the
village a small path led
towards the water. There was a bar here, predictably called
Robinson Crusoe. I followed a path down to a rickety deck on stilts overlooking the bay. Surf crashed continually into
built
the boulders below. a beer,
then went
The
air
was thick and
bitter
with
salt.
I
drank
inside.
The beamed ceiling was too low to stand upright. The windows were small and high. Light filtered through cracks in the walls. Even indoors I had to shout to be heard above the surf. A
woman I
ran through the
menu
for
me. 'There's
lobster,'
she said.
waited for the other items. She prompted me: 'You have to
choose.'
'Choose?' 'Are you going to eat or not?'
waited for my food. The furniture was I sat down while made from old pallets. I looked around the small room. The walls were hung with rusty buoys, harpoons, oil-lamps, a yellowing piece of scrimshaw-work, fish nets, a canvas hammock, decayed wooden blocks, a ship's wheel, frayed rope-ends, fish jaws, shells, I
98
Miles Hordern
a
wooden anchors with iron-bound and undistinguishable flag, worn lengths of chain,
model
straw hat,
stocks, a torn
ships,
a turtle shell, a binnacle, a painted figure-head.
So here found in to the
it all
pirate
South
was again: the assorted maritime paraphernalia
pubs and Chinese junk restaurants from Plymouth
Seas.
But there was
a difference here.
Crusoe was obviously authentic,
a living
The Robinson
museum of the
island's
most important staging-post for European shipping
past as the
heading north into the
unknown
Here was
Pacific.
that elusive
quality the fake places cannot reproduce: the sense that
one good
push would be enough to send the whole structure toppling forward on
its stilts
and smashing into the boulders below
in a
heap of splintered timbers and scuttling cockroaches.
During the course of the evening the bar were young runaways from Santiago
summer,
for the
the village.
filling a
who
filled.
Mostly they
had come to the
island
makeshift campsite on the hillside above
They were here
to live free
and have
a
good time. Even
entering the bar was hilarious fun. Wearing white T-shirts and jeans,
with red or blue handkerchiefs around their heads, necks,
arms and thighs, they bounced through the door in noisy groups of three or four, laughing and clapping, tousling each other's
Then
they shared a beer. Jovito had deserted from the army.
Esteban worked
having just
as a
stevedore in Concepcion. Gloria Ines was
a telepathic relationship
wore handkerchiefs and did
with Michael Jackson. Guillermo drugs.
I
drank too
much beer, and
spent a long time talking to Gloria Ines. She had written a
about her 'relationship' and gave
ocean in
my
on
Pacific,
my I
me a copy.
blue eyes, and that the
was with me. that
hair.
I
voyage
I
me
I
book
had the
of the waves and
stars
told her. Gloria Ines said
home through the constellations of the South when heard her voice calling
shouldn't be surprised
through the
spirit
shudder to think what
She told
gale.
99
I
Sailing the Pacific
I
dragged the dinghy up onto the wharf shortly
following morning.
with
It
coming down
little air
swell in the anchorage.
The
climbed the
I
was
was
village
here
at
lane, past the
much
still
too
early.
the
the
odd
window.
campsite and up above the
village.
had made
a film
was on
my way
to see
head of the
forestry
and parks service
conaf. To
in the islands,
silent, save for
My brother-in-law
Juan Fernandez and
contacts, Ivan Laeva, the
dawn
night, hot,
the hatches and persistent ground-
throat clearance behind a curtained
It
after
had been an uncomfortable
I
kill
time
I
strolled
down
one of
his
the network
of paths that followed the contours through the outskirts of the village.
An hour later
I
was shown into
Ivan's office in a prefabricated
conaf nursery and compound.
building overlooking the
Ivan
my hand warmly when explained who was, and showed me a chair. It was a small room, very hot and airless. began telling Ivan about my trip so far. He was a tidy man in a shook
I
I
I
snow-white linen
crisp,
shirt.
Although
than two months, Ivan was the
The
met.
headed
a
islands
were
a
first
I'd
been
in Chile
cosmopolitan Chilean
more I
had
unesco biosphere reserve, and he scientists on a big budget. He
team of international
wore round, wire-rimmed
His hair was razor-cut, and he
glasses.
used plenty of product. After a couple of minutes
I
Ivan wasn't listening to me. In his desk,
I
But
could.
to his seat, I
began to
another person, in such myself.
When
the
time,
to
first
me.
I
for four start
something was wrong.
he stood up, walked round
and opened the window on the north
Then he returned best
realised fact,
I
and
feel
a small
I
side
of the room.
continued with
my
story as
uncomfortable, so close to
room.
I
became conscious of
pictured myself in Ivan's office
where
I
saw, almost for
had come from and what the
sea
had done
maroon swivel chair, my hair and beard uncut I'd worn the same T-shirt and shorts since the passage from Patagonia nearly a week before, day and
sat
on
a
months.
of the
I
ioo
Miles Hordern
on my forearms. Clearly, opening the window hadn't been quite enough to clear the air. Ivan soon suggested that we go outside, and he would show me round the had dried in
night. Salt
spirals
nursery.
We walked down the netting cages
where
Fernandez
a
and fauna
me
that
is
are
hillside
seedlings
and entered one of several
were growing in
more than
many are now
forty per cent
passing sailors, and the area was
would be planted out
between the netting plants I
I'd
now
I
nodded
realise
severely eroded.
could
I
down onto
as
had been
The
seed-
followed
I
terraces
where
him
larger
and looked knowing, but
gravely,
how much knowledge
I'd lost at sea.
that morning and climbed into the cockpit, as I morning on passage. Only this time I kept going, into
the dinghy and onto the wharf.
found myself in crossed
I
forest
source of meat by
woken up
did every
on
as a
to stop further damage.
cages, then
were growing.
was beginning to
endangered. Ivan told
of the original
listened to Ivan as carefully as
I
Juan
unique environment. Most of the species of flora
endemic, and
destroyed by goats and rabbits introduced
lings
large
raised beds.
I
did nothing differently, and
where I'd forgotten the rules. It hadn't this morning I could wash my face and put
a place
my mind that
a clean shirt.
spent four days
at
Juan Fernandez, mostly in the company of
the island's fix-it-man, Ernesto Melgarejo, his wife and
young
sons.
days ashore,
The anchorage was uncomfortable so I spent being shown around by Ernesto, or at his house.
climbed up to
Selkirk's
lookout on
arid track across the southern flank
the point. All the goats
on
a
Ernesto about the Robinson Crusoe, the bar night.
He
said
it
was
a tourist place.
IOI
We
airstrip at
had been eradicated, but
the hillsides were running with rabbits. At one point
first
the
high ridge, then took the
of the island to the
this island
two
I'd
gone
That night
I
I
asked
on my went to
to
Sailing the Pacific
recommended, the one
the bar he
the locals preferred.
was
It
quite empty. I
hadn't intended to stay on the island for long, and
probably have flat
calm.
on the
left
An hour later
third day, but
was seated on
I
it
dawned windless and
a zebra-striped sofa eating
an enormous lobster for breakfast, presented to wife in consolation for the delay. in the family that
Once
or twice
as
ate they
I
me
by Ernesto's
became something of a joke the island until the wind blew.
It
couldn't leave
I
would
checked outside
to see if the cloud
was changing shape, or the leaves were moving on the
trees.
By
lunchtime the children were blowing raspberries every time they
saw me, then I
took
a
falling
about in hysterics.
path above the church and climbed steeply through
the bush to the west of the village. After thirty minutes' hot
climb slope fell
I
came out above
which
beneath
my
to the ridge.
The
feet.
making drop of
the tree line and began ascending a scree
up
stretched
ridge was very narrow, with a giddy-
thousand
a
A perpetual slide of stones
on the other
feet
side. In places a
cornice of rock folded away into the emptiness, pebbles rolling quietly over the crest and out of sight. Further along the ridge,
where the slope on the
village side
clung to the knife-edge.
and
sat
down
in the shade
There wasn't
seemed
island
height
it
sail
a
to
was
gentler,
with
a
water
bottle.
When
throb slightly beneath as
village.
I
if
two twisted pines
reached them about mid afternoon,
breath of wind.
appeared
houses in the
I
I
lay
my
down, the whole back.
From
this
the surf was breaking right over the
looked to the north-west, the way
once the wind returned. The ocean was
I
would
a rich blue,
and
rigid.
About
ten miles distant the view disappeared into the heat
haze,
and the
sea lost
it
met
its
becoming grey and grainy where place would reach within two hours
colour,
the sky. This was the
I
of leaving the anchorage. I
down from the ridge into Puerto Ingles, the The ruins of the fort were barely distinguishable
looked directly
bay to the west.
102
Miles Hordern
from the boulders around the
bay.
had tumbled down the eroded
that
hillsides
The Englishman Gerald Kingsland had landed
here in the 1970s and set up camp. Kingsland had heard the story
of Alexander Selkirk, and came to out his
been
wretched
a
was
desert bay quit
Isla
Robinson Crusoe to live His camp must have
own fantasy of life on a desert island. There wasn't
place.
Juan Fernandez, but was
and the
a tree in sight,
northerly sun. Kingsland soon
a heat-trap for the
later cast
away on Tuin
Island in
the Torres Strait, with a head full of erotic fantasies, and
Lucy
Irvine.
The
first
known
fictional
account of marooning
is
an Egypt-
ian papyrus fragment, Le Xaufrage, the tale of a solitary castaway
on
a beautiful island, learning to survive.
described
Le Xaufrage has been
the earliest written story of any kind: the
as
European fantasy was being
away on the ocean
cast
beyond everything you have ever experienced
When
I
of islands,
reefs,
and blue lagoons,
saw
I
with the courses steered by most of the
ships in the Pacific.
Some of these
vessels
the South Seas, foundering in cyclones or
weren't
in a place
before.
stared across the sea to the north-west, towards the
tropical haze line tangled
on any
chart.
The
tropical
South
concentration of islands of any ocean;
my rhumb-
first
European
simply disappeared in
on reefs and islands that Pacific has the highest
many are
atolls,
only
metres above sea-level, and very hard to see
at night.
through these waters without
was
Russian roulette. But
of the
sailors
whose
it is
unusual;
a reliable chart
now believed that some,
ships
were wrecked in the
drown, and that Alexander
later
first
what made Selkirk
Selkirk's
few
like playing
perhaps many,
Pacific did not
marooning was not
different as a castaway
a
Sailing
in itself
was that he was
picked up again.
The San
Lesmes was part of
a
squadron under Loaysa, in-
structed to follow Magellan's route to the Spice Islands. original seven ships that
only four
made
it
left
Of the
the Basque region of Spain in
into the Pacific the following year.
103
1
525,
These four
Sailing the Pacific
sailed
north up the coast of Chile until they reached
latitude,
then
temperate
a
mid
course north-west into the tropics. In
set a
ocean the San Lesmes became separated from the other ships in
and was never seen again.
gale,
at sea.
a
was assumed she had been
lost
But various discoveries over the years have suggested
that
It
the San Lesmes was actually wrecked
on Amanu
in the
Tuamotu
archipelago, a line of eighty coral atolls strung like a net across
the South Pacific.
appears that after striking the reef at
It
Amanu
Atoll the captain of the San Lesmes, Hiro, tried to lighten the ship
and so
float
her offby
dumping cannon and
stone ballast into the
lagoon, where they were found in 1929. Unable to free the ship,
Hiro then took the boat and
bouring and larger
atoll
sailed
with the crew to the neigh-
of Hao. Quiros, landing
at
found Spanish-speaking Polynesians and
years later,
Hao eighty man with
a
red curly hair, gold jewellery, and spaniels, the breed of dog typ-
on Spanish ships in the Age of Discovery. Later a was found in the same area, made of cedar, seemingly from
ically carried
cross
ship's spars.
The
way
in
(and Robinson Crusoe's)
is
probable fate of the San Lesmes exposes another
which Alexander untypical: the
Selkirk's story
myth of the
'desert',
peoples were too good
as
The Pacific many places
or deserted, island.
navigators to leave
untouched. During the centuries of the Pacific migrations the Melanesians, Micronesians and Polynesians found, and inhabited, virtually every island
and coral reef in the
tropical Pacific, north
An
alternative
image
itary castaway cutting a daily
notch into
a
and south of the equator.
like this.
The
less night.
ship
is
wrecked on
on the
islet in
the
tree
unseen on
probably spend the
rest
sol-
might go a
moon-
drowned in the surf dawn onto one of the
atoll.
As they look around
the exhausted faces of their surviving shipmates, they will
of the
aren't
coral stagger at
coarse sand beaches of an
coconut
a coral reef
Those crew members who
or torn to shreds
to that
know
they
of their lives here. That might not be
very long: they've arrived on an overpopulated
04
atoll,
where com-
Miles Hordern
petition for space, food
white
man
has ever
and water
been seen
is
where no
often fierce, and
before. Survival will require great
diplomacy.
Before
dawn
a large ship
the following
morning I saw the navigation
standing offCumberland Bay. At the same time
see figures scurrying about beneath the arc lights
dawn broke, of the
bay,
dropped anchor
a naval vessel
and
a
could
on the wharf. As embarked
officers
wharf and motored out towards the
ship.
paid a measure of attention to these comings and goings, but
was distracted by something bay
I
of
in the outer soundings
group of uniformed Armada
in a lighter at the I
lights
itself
the water was
still,
the
else:
but
I
wind had
returned. In the
could see an occasional small
white-cap half a mile offshore. There were patches of low cloud
scudding across the sky and, seen through binoculars, the
on the central I rowed to
ridge-line
the
wharf with
smaller, rusting supply ship
tied to the
wharf all
trees
were moving.
my
papers.
had arrived
at
The
previous day a
the island.
It
had been
night, crashing heavily into the timber piles
The water swirling around the piles was now littered with splinters. The work of unloading the ship had begun on the long
swell.
the day before. Crates were
now
stacked
all
over the wharf, to-
gether with fridges, televisions, furniture, mattresses, and another
new phone-box. A small crowd of people had already gathered on the wharf, looking for their new possessions or inspecting the grey naval ship anchored in the distance. The arrival of this ship marked island's calendar. It was the end of would take all the back-packers home to the continent, and also some of the islanders, who would spend the winter months with relatives in Santiago and Concepcion. The cargo ship at the wharf was still half- full. Every few
an important day in the
summer: the
ship
minutes the derrick hoisted another net onto the quay, amid
much
shouting of directions and advice. Ernesto was standing in
105
Sailing the Pacific
When
the centre of the hold directing operations.
put
hook of the
his foot into the
the quay. Ernesto and
know one word
however,
did,
to Selkirk's lookout
two days
Ernesto had panted, 'Oh, very
which was
.
a
now underdeveloped.
even
'very'.
earlier, toiling .
he
of English, which he repeated
word was
quite often, as a couplet. This
up
me
derrick and was lifted up onto
always conversed in Spanish,
my skills in it were
limitation because
He
I
he saw
.
.
very
,
.
The
'
.
As we'd climbed
through the bush, adjective
was
always missing, but could usually be guessed from the context. In
word was presumably
the missing
instance,
this
When we
reached the lookout he'd
sat
beside
me
'exhausted'.
and, gazing at
the view over the island and ocean, uttered a wistful, 'Ah, very .
.
.
,
.
very
the wharf,
returned.
where
hoped didn't
',
.
I
I
the missing adjective surely 'beautiful'.
told
was going.
I
I
said
make some
to
naming
Now, on him what he could see for himself: the wind had would be leaving the island within an hour. He asked
.
my
was heading for French Polynesia, but
I
sailing to
talking a
week?
gave
islands. It
me
a
I
could see that
should take about
a
a small
explained that
boat
was about
it
most south-easterly of the
month
to get there. Ernesto
sweaty bear-hug, and the Chilean handshake, which
my boat in
has three distinct moves.
He
looked
then out to the open
and
said slowly,
Normally
I
French Polynesia in
A year?
three thousand miles to Gambier, the
French
But
stops along the way.
destination didn't really answer his question. Ernesto
know what
meant. Was
I
I
sea,
at
the anchorage,
'Ooh, very
.
.
,
.
could guess what Ernesto was trying to
very
say.
It
was
obvious, from a shared knowledge or perception of the world, despite the linguistic gap.
But
this
time
I
didn't
know how he
had absolutely no idea what
would have
finished his sentence.
adjective he
might use to describe an ocean voyage.
I
made my way back through
wharf where the Armada answer to inside.
my knock
The
office
office
I
the
crowd
to the base
and, as the door was unlocked,
was empty. Presumably the Armada
1
06
of the
was located. There was no I
walked
staff were
Miles Hordern
out
the naval vessel.
at
I
see any of them, so sat wait.
To
went back onto the wharf but couldn't down on a bollard outside the office to
of Juan Fernandez,
clear out
I
needed
to see the har-
bourmaster. Boats have to get a 'clearance', in Chile a zarpe, from
each country, sometimes from each port.
new you
place
you hand
are given a
new
in the old clearance,
one.
The
depends on the country and visiting yachts. In
ance
soon
as
as
When
you
arrive at a
and when you leave
exact nature of these formalities
its
attitude to, or familiarity with,
some places, officials demand to see your clearyou arrive, and there are supposedly severe
penalties for those unable to in the Caribbean,
it
produce one; elsewhere, especially
can be hard to find an
official
who
has
the remotest interest in your clearance. Generally speaking, the
Chileans had belonged in the
category, but in this case,
first
because of Juan Fernandez's status
as
something of an annexe to
the mainland, the harbourmaster hadn't actually taken
me when
clearance from register I
my
I
arrival in a large
first
came
now
that I'd
made
my
had
I still
though he did
office.
I
was impatient to
the decision to leave.
asked had seen the harbourmaster, or back. As
old
book.
waited for ten minutes outside the
get started
ashore,
my
clearance from
No
one
I
knew when he might be
my last port,
I
could show
and not mention having stopped at Juan meant there would be no entry in the har-
that at the next island,
Fernandez.
It
just
book recording my departure. hung about for a couple more minutes, then carried the dinghy down the steps at the wharf and rowed briskly back out to
bourmaster's I
the boat. So in
one
sense, I've never actually left Juan Fernandez:
in bureaucratic terms at least,
I'll
spend the
rest
of
my
life
on
the island.
There was
a light
got to the boat.
I
breeze blowing across the bay by the time sailed off the anchor,
107
I
then under the western
Sailing the Pacific
headland of Bahia Cumberland. Directly in the
wind was Then,
as
and progress slow
dirty I
came out from
settled in the south-west, I
fifty
the island's
and
wind shadow,
was able to
I
island's lee the
north for half an hour.
sailed
I
was bound for Yosemite Rock, which
the breeze
my chosen course.
set
lies
two hundred and
miles north-west of Juan Fernandez. Yosemite was reported
in 1903,
and the Admiralty
pilot describes
some length with pointed heads
as a
it
white rock of
three to four metres high. Ships
searching for Yosemite in 1904 and 1909 found nothing; other vessels
have reported
a feature in the
ten miles further west. Yosemite
charted latitude, but up to
a classic vigia,
is
or rock which has been reported but tence, I
is
now
cloud,
an island, reef
position, or exis-
doubted.
made good
There was
whose
little
progress that morning, reaching in easy seas. sun, the sky being mostly filled with banks of
which made
it
cool to
sit
on deck and watch the
sea. In
wind freshened and I retreated to the cockpit. The cloud darkened and sank lower in the sky. As night fell, the afternoon the
I
thought I
it
found
much
would it
rain.
even a short stopover
The wind had beam, and
and was surprised
difficult to sleep that night,
my
in a rising sea.
anchor could
at
risen to twenty-five knots,
affect
now
passage to the north-west was I
lay
on
my bunk
that
I
becoming bumpy
tense than
when
I'd
closed
In the cockpit time passed
night there.
I
and must have
couldn't hear the
water rushing round the skin of the boat, and
more
my
more
expected the rain to
I
woke
window of ocean
easily,
start at
much of the any moment. The air
so
I
spent
separated from the blackness
all
rail,
the stanchions. In the cockpit
could stand comfortably,
on either bench, holding the
steel
108
swells a
around
occasionally pouring round
and raced beneath the leeward I
feeling
eyes.
was hot, thick with tension. As the boat pitched on the small
routine.
forward of the
for long periods,
dozed off at times, but never so deeply
my
how
my feet
handles in the spray-hood
Miles Hordern
frame. I
I
could see almost nothing of the ocean around the boat.
read the state of the sea by the combination of effort
it
took
my spread-eagled arms and legs to remain connected to the boat. That night
was an almost
it
wind swept sideways over
of gyrations,
restful series
the boat, soothing
my
as a
nerves.
some-
In the small hours lightning set in, bursting in sheets,
times
on two
lutely silent,
But there was no thunder:
sides at once.
and
not
still
a
drop of
saw that the horizon was very
I
back
down
When
to the cabin
of trying to get to
wa:>
*•
Recrossing the
Canal Moraleda
Juan Fernandez, birthplace of the castaway
myth
The church first
built
Gambier
at Akamaru, the by the Picpus Fathers
at
Mother-of-pearl inlay on the altar at
the cathedral at
Rikitea: the remains of the
'Mad
Priest'
in a crypt
Honore
Laval
lie
nearby
Taravai, Gambier: the first Europeans in the Pacific often
commented on how
pale-
skinned they observed the Polynesians to be, leading to
no end of speculation about the origins of the South Sea islanders.
William Dampier
suggested that the Pacific
peoples might be descended
from the
^
lost tribe
of Israel
Tahiti
Tied
to the wharf, Papeete
Wreck of the Nicky Lou, Beveridge Reef
Pete Atkinson with his
homemade underwater camera housing. The circular contraption
behind him cage,
is
a shark
made from
chain-
link garden fencing
and
of irrigation pipe. It was designed to 'concertina' for ease of a length
stowage on
a
36-foot
and used to photograph tiger sharks at Minerva Reef
yacht,
Miles Hordern
than
Terra Australis.' Campbell believed that Tasmania,
this
New
Holland,
Zealand, and Quiros's Austrialia were
the same land mass.
He
said
all
New
part of
of the British, 'We want not
we want not Power, but we want Will ... let us and we shall succeed ... If we search, we shall find; if
Capacity, deserve,
we knock,
Most
days
it
will
be opened.'
on the passage west
I
had
a sleep after lunch.
With
the
my night's rest so often broken, an afternoon nap When woke spent an hour or two four o'clock, which was the time took my daily
sun so high and
became an
inevitability.
quietly until
I
I
I
bath in the cockpit.
My bath became
one of those
rituals
after
some
sun was
trial
and
of
error, the best time. In the late
hot enough for sea water to
still
while with only little
around which
Four o'clock was,
part of each tropical day revolved.
a
a certain I
decided
afternoon the
feel refreshingly cool,
couple of hours to go before sunset there was
chance of getting uncomfortably hot again before the cool
Throughout the heat of each
nightfall.
target
I
set myself.
After that, the long
day,
4 p.m. was the
wind-down
into night
could begin.
My bath was
a
simple routine.
I
sat
on the cockpit bench and
my head and
slowly tipped half a dozen buckets of sea water over shoulders.
work.
didn't use any soap. So-called
I
On my previous
'salt
water soaps' don't
voyage through the islands
I
had discov-
ered Joy, the local washing-up liquid, which lathers well in water.
French
But
I
wouldn't be able to get any Joy until
islands,
beginning of the passage bucket to remove the
and anyway, It
how
I
I
and didn't regret the absence of
salt.
liked the
I
now
I
reached the
soap.
At the
after the last
didn't have a clean towel,
salt.
takes a certain period
the ocean feels
used to towel myself dry
But by
salt
of time
on your
at sea to
skin,
149
become
sensitised to
and the variations
that are
Sailing the Pacific
of the voyage away from the coast of
possible. In the first days
New
Zealand
was aware only that the sea was wet and cold.
I
Temperature appeared to be the
Ocean
the spray
felt bitter
over the side to scrub
numbed my
the water
it
Southern
sole variable. In the
and hard, and when
dipped
I
a
pan
hands. In those
on the cockpit bench washing the dishes, my shoulders were perpetually hunched in defence, waiting for the next sting of spray on the back of my head and the cold creep high
latitudes, as
I
knelt
down my
of water
neck. In the far south
I
battled to keep the
ocean out: outside heavy jackets with strapped washboards and bolted hatches. with the water, except for
my
face
and
my
in
had
I
little
direct
engagement
but constant slipperiness on
a slight
which never properly
hair,
behind
collars,
dried.
Sailing in tropical waters allows a different type of exposure
Washing
to the ocean. feels,
way your
in salt water changes the
skin
and so changes your perception of the environment. In the
short tropical evenings, after
on
ing into streaks
my
his sea.
in, as a
When
bath, I'd
arms and
prickling sensation that
comfort
my
I
legs.
learned
first
watch the
My
skin
salt
harden-
felt dry, a slight
to accept
and
later find
simple sign of connection between the sailor and
I
rubbed
my forearm,
the deck. In heavy rain squalls
I
white powder sprinkled to
stood in the cockpit feeling fresh
down my body. When licked my lips, the water running down my face tasted salty from my hair. When the rain
water stream
stopped, the silky,
But it's
I
I
my body
wind dried
my hair separated from a felt
no cleaner
after
an illusion of the lone
salty
in minutes.
I
felt light
mass into individuals strands.
No
such a soak in fresh water.
sailor,
but
I
never
felt dirty, far
The baths took in the tropics were not about getting much as staying cool and fresh, and feeling at home on I
At 24 south
latitude, the trade
there was a light
was again
fickle.
One
westerly - a headwind - an ominous
150
and
doubt
offshore.
clean so
the sea.
afternoon
sign.
Then
Miles Hordern
beneath the meridian
several short calms left the boat spinning
sun.
A
from
thousand miles from Easter Island
Henderson looked
a distance,
about
island,
six miles
by
I
made
uninviting.
with bare
three,
a raised coral
It is
and
cliffs
Even
landfall.
mop
a
of
green bush on the central plateau. Quiros sighted the island in 1606, and
it
was named
But Henderson
1800s.
Captain John Henderson in the
after
known
best
is
for the part
has played in
it
the story of Pacific castaways. It
began with the whaler Essex, an old ship by 18 19, 87
long, 238 tons, square-sterned with
head.
The
recently
first
Owen
mate,
been thoroughly
and was now,
no
gallery
Chase, recorded
refitted in her
and no figure-
how
the ship had
home port of Nantucket
sound, substantial
'in all respects, a
feet
vessel'.
The
Essex had been victualled and provisioned for a whaling voyage
two and
to last
a half years.
She
sailed in
August 18 19.
The Essex encountered heavy westerly gales in the Southern Ocean and took five weeks to round Cape Horn. The following year she arrived in the Juan Fernandez islands and took
on wood, water and captain,
George
fresh meat.
Then her twenty-eight-year-old whaling grounds
Pollard, set a course for the
at
the Galapagos Islands.
At eight o'clock on the morning of 20 November whales was sighted near the Galapagos. the crew gave chase in the boats taken), leaving the mate,
The
a large
blow
sperm whale about eighty-five
several times,
struck the ship
and swim
later published.
feet
on our
faces'.
beneath the
on the bow with
The
ship,
Chase's
He
saw
long leave the pod,
The whale the crewmen
straight at the ship. its
head, giving
onboard 'such an appalling and tremendous us
most of
three whales were
(at least
Owen Chase, on board the ship.
account of the events that followed was
pod of
a
captain and
jar as nearly
ship trembled like a leaf.
grazing the keel with
its
threw
The whale passed The whale was
back.
then seen again, apparently in convulsions, 'enveloped in the
foam of the
sea that his continual
151
and violent thrashing about
in
Sailing the Pacific
the water had created around him, and
I
smite his jaws together,
with rage and
as if distracted
could distinctly see him
whale then charged the ship again, struck and disappeared. Chase records times been
known to
it
for a
fury'.
The
second time,
that
though whales had some-
attack the small
open boats from which the
harpoons were actually thrown, and even to clamp these boats in
no whale had ever rammed
their jaws,
The
Essex rolled onto
its
side
were cut away, which righted the
The crew were now
level.
all
a ship before.
and began to ship,
in the
sink.
The
but she was awash
open
boats.
They
at
masts
deck
spent the
night tied to the half-submerged hulk of the Essex. In the
first
morning
a
hole was cut in the deck and salt-bread and casks of
Then the Essex was given up for lost. The wrong quarter to sail to the nearby Galapagos Islands. There was no other land close to hand. Thirteen hundred miles to the south-west lay the Marquesas - the most obvious islands to head for - but they were not even considered: they fresh
water retrieved.
wind was
in the
were thought
to
century
regarded the prospect of cannibalism with horror.
sailors
be inhabited by cannibals, and nineteenth-
Captain Pollard made the decision to
sail
south to about 25 ° in
hope of then picking up a westerly wind which might carry them to the coast of Chile or Peru. Twenty men embarked in the
three boats. These whale boats were light and fragile, designed to
be rowed
fast in
pursuit of whales.
Now overloaded, they were
quite unsuitable for such an ocean crossing.
The
boats
nearly a month.
'Our
They were
sufferings during these
The hot
belief.
degree
as
justly life;
frequently becalmed. Chase wrote,
calm days almost exceeded
of the sun beat
rays
down upon
human
us to such a
to oblige us to hang over the gunwale of the boat, into
the sea, to cool our
were
south-south-west across the Pacific for
sailed
strictly
ranked
weak and
fainting bodies.'
Food and water
rationed. 'The privation of water',
among
says
Chase,
'is
the most dreadful of the miseries in our
the violence of raving thirst has
152
no
parallel in the catalogue
Miles Hordern
of a
human
loaded
On
calamities.'
Owen
Chase guarded the provisions with
pistol.
20 December 1820 the crew of the Essex sighted un-
known
land.
calculation
Chase wrote,
...
not within the scope of
'It is
what the
to divine
Alternate expectation,
this occasion.
Henderson
was Henderson
that this landfall
much
didn't offer
in the
castaways found a few crabs and small
and
birds' eggs. After
in a cave that
terrible condition.
other's assistance in
we now
at
low
felt,
exertions.'
Island.
sustenance.
of fresh water
a spring
The men were
tide.
The
then ate peppergrass
'Our bodies had wasted away
and bone, and possessed so
Relief,
way of
fish,
two days they found
was exposed only
and
fear, gratitude, surprise
exultation each swayed our minds and quickened our
We now know
human
of our hearts were on
feelings
still
in
to almost skin
strength as often to require each
little
performing some of
its
weakest functions.
must come soon, or nature would
sink.'
Reluctantly, Captain Pollard decided they must again put to sea.
The
falling in
boats set
plan was to
sail
for the coast of
with Easter Island en route. sail
to the east
South America, perhaps
On 27 December the three
with seventeen
men on
board. Three
men chose to stay on Henderson and take their chances. Two weeks into the voyage Matthew Joy, the second
mate,
Owen Chase's Of the calms which
died of starvation and exposure. Shortly afterwards
boat became separated from the other two. followed, he wrote,
had abandoned us
'We began and
at last;
endeavour to prolong
now
a
to think that Divine Providence
it
was but an unavailing
effort to
tedious existence.' Occasionally
whales spouted around the boat. 'We could distinctly hear the furious thrashing of their
tails
in the water,
and our weak minds
pictured their appalling and hideous aspects.' Another
and
his
body was committed
after a night's deliberation,
to the sea.
of which Chase
guage to paint the anguish of our souls the survivors ate his heart.
153
man
died,
But then another died; says,
'I
have no lan-
in this dreadful
dilemma',
Sailing the Pacific
By
the middle of February the
men were
'Our
desperate.
cadaverous countenances, sunken eyes and bones just starting
through the
skin,
with the ragged remnants of clothes stuck
about our sun-burnt bodies, must have produced an appearance .
.
.
and revolting
affecting
17th, a
in the highest degree.' Finally,
was sighted. She turned out to be the
sail
Indian,
on the
Captain
whom we are indebted for every polite, friendly and
Crozier, 'to
attentive disposition'.
The
Indian
had been northbound up the
coast of Chile. Captain Crozier took
Owen
Chase and
his
men
They had made one of the most remarkable openboat voyages of all time, sailing more than five thousand miles to Valparaiso.
across
deep ocean. Chase's boat was
Captain
at sea for
twice
as
long
as
whose own open-boat voyage to safety became on the Bounty. two other boats that had left Henderson with Owen
Bligh's,
the stuff of legend after the mutiny
Of the
Chase, Captain Pollard's had already been picked up by a ship
south of the Juan Fernandez first
islands.
Three
men had
perished early in the voyage, and was eaten.
maining
died.
The
The
four re-
men then cast lots. A crewman named Coffin drew the He was shot by Charles Ramsdale and eaten. Ten
short straw.
days later another
devoured.
The
No
January.
The
found.
crewman died and
third boat
in
three
is
men
setting
left
on Henderson They had been
Island cast
I
its
turn
were eventually
away on Hender-
when
I
passed south of Henderson Island.
no bay or recognised anchorage of any
of the Essex had had the surf.
in
days.
The sun was There
body was
survivors were picked up, and the boat was never
rescued by the ship Surry.
son for
his
was separated from the Captain's on 28
once met
difficulty landing their a
couple in Tahiti
anchor their yacht precariously on ern side and
swim
ashore,
a
sort.
The crew
open boats through
who had managed
narrow ledge on the west-
though they couldn't climb the
154
to
cliffs.
Miles Hordern
I
looked up the west coastline through binoculars. The condi-
tions
were very
the trade steady in the south-east: ideal for
light,
trying to find an anchorage and get ashore, if only for a short time.
But though
I
watched the west coast
for
didn't take the tiller off the self-steering chain. to step foot ashore.
ued
sailing west,
The
With
the
wind
away from the
it
I
minutes,
I
wasn't tempted
in the south-east,
I
contin-
land, at four knots.
Henderson disappeared from
tropical night fell quickly.
view before
many
sank beneath the horizon.
and began to prepare an evening meal.
I
moved
Owen
into the cabin
Chase's journal
is
believed to have been one source for both Melville's Moby-Dick,
and Edgar Allen Poe's Narrative ofArthur Gordon Pym of Nantucket. One more recent newsworthy event regarding Henderson hap-
pened
in 1957.
An American named Robert Tomarchin
landed on the island from
was
along with his chimpanzee
a yacht,
Moko, to recreate the castaway experiences of the three Essex whalemen who had survived for nearly four months on the island. The yachtsman and the chimp spent three weeks marooned together before the call came to take them off.
Two Pitcairn It
days later
was
sighted Pitcairn Island. In the
I
a bright
green
dome on
midday sun
the south-western horizon.
was on uninhabited Pitcairn that Fletcher Christian and
fellow-mutineers from the Bounty, together with a
beyond the reach of
Tahitians, established a castaway society
of their descendants
British justice. Forty-six
his
number of
still
live
on the
is-
land today.
approached Bounty Bay from the north. There was
I
breakwater here which protected the
anchorage
were very
on
a
day
chatter. else
at Pitcairn
light:
is
only landing.
The
notoriously poor but, again, conditions
the anchorage
like today.
island's
a tiny
Over
the
would never be more tenable than
VHF
radio
I
heard
a burst
of local
My radio reception has never been good, but something
was distorted about the voices
I
listened to:
I
thought
I
heard
the tones of archaic Somerset, transported to the South Seas.
155
Sailing the Pacific
seems that
It
away
is
not yet
Pitcairn's story as the
most remote
island hide-
an end. Six wealthy timber merchants and
at
a
tax judge based in Wellington have put forward an offer to
buy
the island and turn
The
proposal
Oeno,
is
for
two
it,
effectively, into a
corporate country.
one on Pitcairn and one on nearby
airstrips,
$50-million investment in tourist accommodation,
a
exclusive rights to the 200-miles fishing zone, independence
within five years, and Pitcairn citizenship for thirty company
The
shareholders and directors.
of Fletcher Christian
spirit
on.
lives
The deputy governor of part of the British
the
last
Pitcairn,
Karen Wolstenholme,
is
High Commission
in Wellington: Pitcairn
is
South
British colony in the
Pacific.
Wolstenholme
vetoed the independence, citizenship and fisheries parts of the but said the islanders had encouraged her to pursue the
deal, strips I
tiful
and
hove-to off Bounty Bay for ten minutes. The island
and dramatic: dark
partly shaded didn't
air-
tourist lodges.
cliffs
by cloud. The
sea
was the colour of the
anchor the boat. The wind was holding, and
to the north-west.
It's
sky.
life
the only important thing here.
But
that I
my
didn't
look back to watch Pitcairn fade on the horizon. Each time passed the land by
The next nation was
it
grew
easier,
and more
I
exhilarating.
and nervous.
My desti-
stage
of the voyage was
Isles
Gambier, the most south-easterly group
fast
I
course
set a
I
part of the illusion of ocean
own passage seemed to be
beau-
is
rising to a craggy green plateau,
in
French Polynesia, three hundred miles from Pitcairn. The wind climbed steadily through the
was
a forty-five-knot squall.
was running north-west
at
first
afternoon. At midnight there
By dawn
from the boom, occasionally cracking easterly swell the
wave
the following
over six knots.
crests
A
in the
broke with
a
morning
wind. In the large
wet thud under the
transom. With each one the boat rushed onwards in
of speed.
156
I
double reef hung
a burst
Miles Hordern
In the tropics these conditions are usually reinforced trade
winds
that can last for
thirty knots,
making
many
The
days.
trade
and furious
for a fast
steady at
is
up
to
with luck in
ride,
strong sunshine.
The
sky that morning was sleet grey, though, and patches of
came over the
glancing rain
ducked from unpredictable but could only
landed near
tell
my
eastern horizon. In the cockpit
assaults
of both
salt
one from the other when the heavy
mouth. Worse,
I
spray and rain, flecks
recorded in the log the lowest
I
readings for barometric pressure since leaving the coast of Patagonia.
seemed
It
that these
were not trade winds generated by
high pressure to the south, but an easterly on the underside of a
somewhere
depression
to
my
north, near the Marquesas.
Depressions in the tropics are bad news. That
There had been reports on the radio
all
made me nervous. summer of freak
weather around the globe. South-east Asia had suffered months of drought; bush forcing fires
traffic
fires
raged in Sumatra, Borneo and Malaysia,
to use headlights at midday;
drifted across the Indian
killed fifty-five
Ocean
smoke from
people in Poland and sixty in the Czech
public. Mud-slides destroyed
the
to the Maldives. Flooding
Re-
communities from the Mississippi
to California. I
listened to these
ment
at first.
of hours unfolds.
I
Over
BBC
reports with a sailor's
smug detach-
the time I've been at sea, I've spent hundreds
sitting beside
the radio listening as world history
have heard accounts of wars, elections, scandals, geno-
cide, liberation, earthquakes. After
weeks on passage through the
trade winds, the tropical seas can appear the
on earth by comparison. There small island that
is
the cruelties of the
far
is
no
threat here. I've
removed from both
human
most benign place found
natural disasters
a
and
race.
Reports of unusual weather right around the world contin-
ued through the tropics,
early
months of
1998.
news agencies were agreed 157
By
the time
that this
was
I
reached the
a systematic dis-
Sailing the Pacific
ruption to global weather. But
still I
longer to believe that
somehow
beyond the horizon.
was not
of
my
It
managed
for several
until late in
March
began to crack. Almost
island sanctuary
that the facade
after the event,
of ocean
had
I
just crossed, be-
tween the coast of South America and the Polynesian
When Nino:
it
I
in the Pacific,
name, they
a silly
El
some
that attitude
is
so-named, by the
Jesus. In this season, in a
sailors scoffed at El
By
the late
1
990s you
any more.
Nino begins around Christmas time
and Peru and
off the coasts of Chile
local fishermen, after the infant
normal
high pressure over the
year,
eastern Pacific generates trade winds from east to west. trades
is
used by those determined to
said,
explain every vagary of global weather.
seldom heard
islands,
volatile in the world.
first sailed
was
I
weather in distant parts of the world had
realised that the freak
started right here: the stretch
one of the most
weeks
was separate from the world
I
blow warm equatorial waters
same
in the
The
direction, allow-
ing colder water to well up from the sea-bed off the coast of
Chile and Peru. But for reasons that stood, in an El is
Nino
abnormally low in the
are not properly
still
year this pattern
is
reversed.
tropics, the trade
by long periods of calm, the
warm
water
winds is
The
under-
pressure
are interrupted
never pushed from
the coast, and sea temperatures are from five to ten degrees Celsius above normal.
From
of the
this part
Pacific, El
Nino
triggers a
of severe weather around the world. But the affected.
Cyclones
depressions
in the
South
form over warm,
cyclone season
lasts
local
domino weather
Pacific are generated
tropical water. In a
from November
to
effect is
also
when
normal year the
March or April, but most
storms occur in the western sector, in the Coral Sea and the waters around
Fiji.
end of March
to
Cyclones timed
relatively rare. I'd
my
in the east, in arrival in
minimise the
French Polynesia, are
French Polynesia for the
risk.
However, the previous major El Nino event of 1982-3 had 158
Miles Hordern
seen a different weather pattern. Five cyclones battered eastern first four months of the year. The last, Gambier with seventy-five-knot winds in
French Polynesia in the
Cyclone William, late April.
hit
My position now was a little more than two hundred
miles from Gambier.
The wind was
The
thirty-five knots.
sky
over the eastern horizon was black, and barometric pressure was low. All the signs
deep in the this
El
were
a
depression to
my
north,
warm enough in would develop into a
temperatures were
tropics. If sea
Nino
was
that there
year, this tropical depression
cyclone, and track south.
The day before I reached Gambier there were two more squalls with driving gale force
steep
rain. In the
and
I
night the easterly never dropped below
ran under bare poles.
and breaking. The
between
was
sea
tarry black cloud
By dawn the swells were The skyline alternated
grey.
and the advancing,
of
electric fuzz
rain squalls.
Late that
morning I sighted two black
to the south-west, the
Mokoto. Gambier
is
a
triangles
group of nine small
a partial barrier reef fifteen miles across.
on the horizon
Mt Duff
pyramid summits of
islands,
The
and
Mt
protected by
enclosed lagoon
is
On the
eastern
reef are several trailing sand islands, or motus; the largest
accom-
But the main
moun-
mostly navigable, but there are numerous shoals.
modates an
airstrip.
tainous, a volcanic knife-edge
Mangareva,
island,
of rock. At
its
is
feet there
is
lush
bush, surrounded by a palm-fringed shore and beaches the
colour of cream. veil
The lagoon
is
turquoise. Sea spray hangs as a
of mist over the reef
An hour of the
after sunset
reef. It
I
was two miles off the northern point
was ten miles
and knew
I
would not
and the lagoon inside
to the pass,
the reef was not navigable in darkness.
I
had arrived too
late,
find an anchorage until the following
morning. In the lee
into
seas became calmer. Then I sailed wind shadow and the gale was blocked out,
of the reef the
Mangareva
s
59
Sailing the Pacific
way
replaced by a dirty offshore flow. In this its
sphere of influence out over the ocean.
now under
quietly
some
making
a
Off the
At
i
I
down on
lay
a.m.
I
anxious about
this
and
Gambier.
I
a tropical
drift
up
sails
and
lay
two hours,
for
on the GPS. The
bunk and
set
the alarm.
and beat back towards the
sails
dawn.
till
I
reef,
slept little that night,
had practised so hard. But unlike Easter
for a
alternative to this stop at
month, and needed
so, this landfall
storm in the
to
was problematic.
fill
the
If there
were few good anchor-
islands, there
ages here. The main bay at the The person I had become over better to stay at sea.
no
there was
been offshore
tank with water. Even
was
of
rate
sat
interruption in the voyage and the thought of
life
Pitcairn,
I'd
I
about half a knot, away from the
at
the leeward
put up reduced
leaving the sea
along more
sailed
dropped the
I
current.
meal and watching the
then lay ahull again to wait
Island
pass
on the wind and
boat was heading north-west island.
I
a double-reefed main, parallel to the shore
three miles away.
ahull, drifting
the island extended
village
of Rikitea was exposed.
the
months
last
But the person
I
said
it
had been for
might be
all
my
life
before sailing offshore craved the security of land. At this point, after five
months of the voyage,
were equally ible
but
its
strong.
So
I
these
two
sheltering forces something
and the wave pattern
all
irreconcilable instincts
waited for daybreak, the island invis-
around.
I
could
I
tried to rest
feel in the
under
on the bunk, and more than once found an ugly
wind
a tartan
rug
solace in a bottle
of Spanish brandy.
At dawn the wind was the pass shortly after
with depths of twenty-five I
thirty knots.
first light. It
feet.
was
I
a
motor-sailed through
broad area of shoaling
There was an inflowing current.
entered the channel between Mangareva and Taravai.
fills
here were the steepest
I
have seen.
The two
The
steel
over-
buoys
marking the channel bucked wildly on heavy chains where steep swells picked
up by the
east
wind met
resistance
from the
took two hours to short-tack the four miles from the
160
pass.
tide. It
There
Miles Hordern
was
time to take in the islands around me, except for watery
little
impressions of bush at sea level and columns of black rock climb-
ing vertically into the mist and rain.
point of the island
Once
clear
of the south-east
could bear away to the north, then follow
I
second channel through coral heads to the village I
anchored offa small beach in
The wind was
water.
anchorage was
fresh
fifteen feet
and
reefs.
Rikitea.
of cloudy, disturbed
directly onshore,
by
partly protected
at
a
though the
Beyond, the surface of
the lagoon was almost completely white with breaking water.
Ashore, palms crashed and reared in the wind, their fronds blown submissively outwards like umbrellas in a gale.
The houses along
the water's edge were protected by a rough coral sea wall, but spray
still
reached their walls.
above the village
The
could see a
I
shutters
large,
were
closed.
On a hill
white church. Above
this
the island was lost in rain cloud.
From
the dinghy
I
set a
second anchor. The boat was nodding
on the regular chop. This done, I lifted the oars and let wind blow me ashore. I landed on a tiny beach, only a few
heavily
the
paces long.
The
was coarse and glassy
coral sand
painter to the trunk of a
mango
neatly folded into the crook of
A muddy
tree.
A
disposable
I
tied the
nappy was
two branches.
road ran parallel to the water's edge between
weather-board cottages, their gardens shaded by breadfruit and sour-sop
trees.
Bougainvillaea climbed over trellised porches.
The gendarme was
young French import in tight blue nylon shorts and a white shirt. His eyes lit up when he saw me. 'What about the World Cup?' he beamed. 'Only three months now, but England has no one to feed Shearer.' I
a
hadn't spoken to anyone for four weeks.
I
told the gendarme
I
had been worried about the weather. 'The sun certainly will not shine a
pen
said I
on the England across the desk.
would be faxed to
team,' I
he
wrote
Tahiti.
walked up through the
said,
my
pushing
details
a
piece of paper and
on the page, which he
The formalities were now complete.
village.
161
A large women in a floral print
Sailing the Pacific
dress,
completely sodden with
scooter, splattering
mud
towards the
meteorological
island's
on
building
the hillside
stepped inside.
a
called Henri. Charts
office.
beyond the
desk
came
I
motor-
directed
to a barn
at
the far end.
a set
me of
a
houses, knocked, and
last
The
I
saw
meteorologist was
and weather maps were pinned
There was
his desk.
The gendarme had
behind.
a
appeared to be an empty warehouse, then
It
someone wave from above
skidded past on
rain,
to the walls
of wind instruments and
a baro-
graph. Otherwise, the building was filled with the sound of wind
pummelling the corrugated iron
walls
and torrents of squally
rain
on the roof. Henri handed me the latest weather fax. The chart showed the spiralling form of a deep depression spread across the page, centred five
hundred miles north of Gambier.
I
asked Henri
what he thought was going to happen. 'England will lose,' he said innocently. I said I meant about the weather, what was going to happen with the depression?
He
sion had filled already and was
would It
stay strong,
said
moving
to the
but was unlikely to get worse.
was raining more persistently by the time
The
village.
There was
was deserted.
street
a post office
somewhere
to
The depreswest. The wind
not to worry.
hang
and
out.
I
got back to the
walked slowly past the houses.
I
a hall. I'd
hoped
there might be a bar,
Now that my feet were on land,
I
hated
the idea of going back to the pitching boat.
When
I
reached the
asked the Chinese
He
took
admired
me it,
owner
if
he touched
mimicking shooting
He
he would
out the back to look
my arm
My French didn't stretch to bullets.
of the two shops
first
said
I
me
at
let
me
and asked
I
and
have some water.
told
if
had any
I
I
bullets.
was achieved by him
him
I
didn't have
any
could not have any water.
The shop was next
to the beach.
I
walked back dejectedly and
The boat was still bobbing into the seas lagoon. The anchorage was churned up and
stood beside the dinghy
coming
off the
messy.
decided to look elsewhere for water.
I
inside
the rain water tank. As
'bullets', so this
in the face.
went
I
162
Miles Hordern
As at
I
turned back towards the road
me from
walked milled
saw
I
several faces staring
They waved, so I The building was open-sided, a storage shed for timber. About ten young men, dressed in damp pareus, the shadows of a building nearby.
over.
were lying around on the planks, drinking Hinano, the Tahitian
They made a place for me to sit and put a bottle in my The boys were brash and drunk. Laughter boomed from figures I could barely see in the half-light. The guy next to me
beer.
hands.
was called Matai. His arms and of coral
scars
hair
cuts,
legs
a Polynesian
an AK47.
By late
Nostradamus.
brown skin. His black Matai wore a scarlet singlet
almost white against his
was matted and chalky with
showing
were covered in the raised
salt.
god springing from
cloudburst carrying
afternoon he was offhis face, banging on about
walked out to the beach
I
a
several times to see if
conditions had improved in the lagoon, and stood pushing feet
through the sand until the rain forced
sion: return to the boat, or stay ashore.
timber shed.
It
was
warm and
company of drunks seemed Matai took after
me
to his
dark before
I
I
me
always
to
make
my
a deci-
went back
to the
comfortable inside, and the
a blessed relief after the passage.
home and his
sister
provided
a meal. It
was
returned to the beach.
One September evening in the ship that had carried
1834 three Picpus Fathers gladly quit
them
for the last four
coast of Chile, hoisted their cassocks
around
weeks from the
their thighs,
and
waded through the warm shoal water to a beach in the Gambier group. They had landed at Akamaru, a small island on the windward
side
of the lagoon. Their leader, Father Louis Laval, gath-
ered Father Caret and Brother
Murphy around him,
gave
thanks for their safe landfall, and prayed for the fortunes of the
Order of the Sacred Hearts of Jesus and Mary and the Perpetual Adoration of the Blessed Sacrament,
South
Seas.
[63
at last established in
the
Sailing the Pacific
Gambier was an independent kingdom at the time of the misThere were maraes on each of the main islands
sionaries' arrival.
adorned with
in the group,
were reputed
Human
to
idols to Polynesian gods.
among
be
The people
the most fierce in the South Pacific.
was practised and cannibalism was widespread.
sacrifice
Corpses of loved ones were only preserved by being buried in the deepest part of the lagoon, fittest divers.
The
access to the
main
to
work on Within
king,
beyond the reach of even the
Maputeoa,
initially
refused Father Laval
of Mangareva, so the missionaries
island
the smaller islands in the group.
were mass baptisms
a year there
marriage was introduced.
concept of original modesty. Despite
wretched
grass
sin,
The
and given
this success,
Aukena god Tu were
at Taravai,
and Akamuru. During Lent, stone images of the smashed. Stone churches were built on the tian
set
sites
islanders
of maraes. Chris-
were taught the
calico tunics to preserve their
Father Laval describes living in a
hut on Akamuru. Father Caret kept
a small
garden and Brother Murphy distilled alcohol from the ti plant. The missionaries enjoyed a glass after dinner. The Picpus Fathers were the fundamentalists of their day. They believed the perfect mission to be a replica of a medieval settlement, governed by Catholic orthodoxy, with a priest at centre,
propped up by the native monarchy and
was twenty-five years
old,
he heard about the South to Polynesia
and building
ocean was to be After
his
life's
some months
sionaries
had been
in
working on Seas. a
a
Making
remote
its
nobility. Laval
mission in Chile, the trade
wind
when
passage
island theocracy in a
pagan
work.
The miswhen Maputeoa
the king began to appear at mass.
Gambier
for
two
years
agreed to the destruction of the Te Keika marae, the largest in the group, built on terraces above the village of Rikitea. In Laval began largest
By
work on
church this
in the
the vast St Michel cathedral.
French
Pacific,
on one of the
It
its
place
was the
smallest islands.
time the missionaries had been joined by Count
164
Miles Hordern
Alphonse de Latour de Clamouze, skill as a
draughtsman
who
was
a
minor
aristocrat
with some
largely responsible for an extra-
ordinary series of building projects that transformed the timber
and
grass villages into
The
imposing settlements of coral and rock.
Mt Duff
stone was quarried from
islanders'
backs to the
make
lime.
On
Coral was cut from the reef
village.
Kamaka, then brought
to
and carried on the at
Mangareva by boat and burned
to
the waterfront beneath the temple Laval built a
stone palace with conical dining towers and
follies.
Triumphal
stone archways guarded the paved avenue that led from the
wharf
to the cathedral door.
Mt
At Rourou, on the slopes of
Two hundred nuns
was established.
the island's unmarried
women
Duff, a great stone convent the
filled
cells,
were compelled
and many of
to take
up
resi-
dence and tend the convent gardens. Virtually the whole population
worked
as
forced labour for the quarrying and building
programme. Some died of ships.
One
births
and deaths, suggests
to just 500
and many
starvation,
on
estimate, based
a study
on passing
of Gambier's records of
that the population
during the period of
fled
fell
from 11,000
Laval's rule.
Father Laval introduced the 'Mangarevan Code', a system of
governing
religious laws
all
aspects of
life
in the islands, based
on
those operating in a Jesuit convent. There were plans to build a
monastery, so that ate lives.
Many
men and women
islanders
could
took vows of
were punishable by imprisonment.
A
completely separ-
live
chastity.
Impure thoughts
religious police force
was
implement the Code. Laval was supreme judge
established to
in
the islands, by virtue of his powers of excommunication.
The sight to
islanders
of a ship
were taught
in the
that sailors
lagoon the
women
were and
devils.
girls
At the
first
were instructed
run and hide in the convent. Laval described one captain,
pearl trader
twenty local
named Jean Pignon,
years.
women
as
having been
his
a
nightmare for
Trading captains, used to receiving favours from
and living wild
in the
[65
outer islands, bitterly resented
Sailing the Pacific
When Jean Pignon's nephew Jean Dupuy
Laval's puritanical creed.
refused to sign the
Mangarevan Code he was sentenced
On
months' imprisonment.
his return to Tahiti,
Pignon and together they laid
forces with
a
to fifteen
Dupuy joined
complaint. Finally, the
Catholic Bishop of Tahiti recalled Father Laval to Papeete. report by the French
described Laval
Commandant in Papeete, M. Motte-Rouge,
unstable and authoritarian, carried away by
as
religious zealotry,
A
from having
for thirty-five years
on
lived in isolation
remote
a
was
island. It
from the world
also
found
that the
Picpus Fathers had conducted a highly profitable trade in nacre
- mother-of-pearl -
shell
Papeete in 1880, from
Part of Matai's
to finance their projects. Laval died in
went
a cat scratch that
my
drunken rambling on
woodshed concerned
septic.
afternoon in the
first
the island of Taravai.
He
and
his friend
Paul had a pearl farm in the lagoon there. Matai described the island as paradise, repeatedly.
He seemed
European
had to be searching for
When
I
South
I
He
was
I
I
them out
kindness
itself,
and
spent the next hour
I
choppy water.
When
They
insisted filling
The wind was
to the boat.
and by the end
Paul.
assume
to
that, as a
paradise.
landed the dinghy on the beach the following morn-
now
needed.
and
Seas,
found the Chinese shop-keeper had had
ing
I
in the
I
a
change of heart.
take as
much
water
as
jerry cans and shuttling
still
fresh off the lagoon,
was soaked with spray from rowing through the I
again landed
said they
on the beach
were going to Taravai
I
met Matai
in an island boat,
me to come and visit them there. The passage across the lagoon to Taravai took only half an hour. The island was shapely, three miles long and about one and invited
wide,
its
squalls
central ridge a thousand feet above the sea. Occasional
still
rolled in over the reef to the east.
of the island were the
softest olive
The colour of the lagoon
alternated
166
The
grassy slopes
green in the watery sunshine.
between black and sky blue
Miles Hordern
as
The
cloud obscured the sun.
side.
was on the windward
tiny village
There was no tenable anchorage here
down behind
in this wind, so
I
ran
the island's lee and anchored in a deep horseshoe
bay fringed by palms.
The wind was
almost
still
Hardly
here.
a
frond rustled.
That afternoon
I
climbed up to the central ridge, then bush-
whacked down to the thickets of bamboo.
village
There were four houses here full-time.
It
was
through aeho
Only one family lived place. The houses stood
in the village.
a simple
and lovely
A
beneath palms and breadfruit trees at the water's edge. track, the
and
grass, chest-high,
only road of any sort on the island,
grassy
now overgrown
knee-high, followed the shoreline, flanked by white orchids and maire ferns. Inland, yellow-flowered purau trees sheltered the old
gardens.
I
caught the scent of
At the head of the track
vanilla.
stood the whitewashed church built by Father Laval, the bell
tower climbing above the palms, dazzling in the sun. Inside, the
domed ceiling was inlaid with rosewood. Blue stained-glass filled the
windows. Sunlight the colour of the ocean flooded
must have reminded the
islanders
Outside the church was
in.
Prayer
of swimming underwater. of reclaimed
a large grassy rectangle
land pushing out into the lagoon, trussed up with coral boulders to break the seas.
At the centre of
stone archway thirty feet high.
much
The
this plaza
stood a forbidding
volcanic rock was black,
now
covered with moss, but the masonry was in good condi-
tion. Laval
had placed the archway here to dominate
the island, as this was also the wharf. into a theatre of forced devotion.
He
But
access to
all
had turned the
today, since this
island
was the
only area of clear, levelled land, Matai and Paul used the archway as
I
the goal-post for their afternoon soccer practice.
spent
a
week on
Taravai.
The weather cleared, though
never dropped below twenty knots. Three times
167
I
the
wind
slept in the
Sailing the Pacific
other nights
village, the
leeward
I
The
a .22 rifle.
carcass carried
back to the
down our backs. We and
in a pirogue,
One
He
I
was butchered on the
kill
sun
went
spot, the
blood drip-
village in old postal sacks, trolled for fish along the
slept in the
night Paul and
was high.
on the
We left before dawn one morning to hunt wild pigs
side.
with dogs and
ping
battled back to the anchorage
southern reef
the pearl farm.
at
laid a net in the lagoon,
then
we
moon
once the
fishing after dark,
dived to retrieve
the catch. In the moonlight the water was a deep, emerald green. I
could just see Paul working beneath me,
body
his
like a trail
of emulsion in the water. Beneath the waves he moved with agility, as if
he would never come back.
bite the fish
on the head before pulling them
from the
net.
through the
On my
This stunned them long enough to thread
cord
a
gills.
last
morning
arrived from Mangareva.
The
He
and
me how to
different grace
showed
a
Taravai a boat-load of picnickers
at
We made
a
long table in the clearing.
picnickers were led by a feisty old
woman named
Marie was small and uncommonly gaunt, wrapped purple pareu and matching headscarf. She called
me
Marie.
in a vivid 'little
one',
my ribs. They had brought fish, some baked, some marinated in coconut milk and
though her head barely reached
some
raw,
lime. Also pots of taro, yams, sweet potatoes,
and flagons of wine.
Bananas and pomelos were picked from nearby
About
fifteen
people
sat
down
to lunch.
A
trees.
few of the oldest
ones lay out on woven pandanus mats in the shade. Toddlers ran screaming in and out of the waves. Sitting opposite a
now
French guy from Toulouse,
woman. He was French nuclear
a civilian technician test
Gambier. Until the
my
visit,
yachts.
the
When
site,
test site
a
fifty
me
was
Mangarevan
on Mururoa
two hundred and
Atoll, the
miles from
was decommissioned the year before
whole surrounding I
married to
asked about his
of the houses are empty now.
area had
work
It's
been
off-limits to
the technician said, 'Most
a beautiful place, like this here.
168
Miles Hordern
This talk about nuclear pollution, that the into the
I
ocean —
it's all lies.
swim
I
atoll
is
leaking waste
in the lagoon every day.'
returned to Rikitea on Sunday morning.
planned to buy
I
things in the store the following day, then put to sea.
I
a
few
climbed
the curving staircase to the cathedral of St Michel for the ten
o'clock service. This was the centre-piece of Father Laval's pro-
and rock, with seating for twelve
ject, a great edifice in coral
hundred. less
The
entire population
than half the pews. Laval
mother-of-pearl
is
islands today
fill
buried in a crypt before the
neck-
shell
playing in a ukulele ensemble.
In the afternoon there was a football match. just
would
That Sunday the congregation numbered
altar.
mostly children. Paul was wearing multiple
thirty,
laces,
of the
beyond the
below the
cathedral,
The
pitch was
of the present-day
site
mission house. Paul and Matai were playing in the same team.
There were about
around the bank on the inland
The
water-logged: a bog. airborne.
As
slowly through the crowd.
He
priest.
ball
stopped
at
The
side.
wouldn't
watched the game
I
I
priest smiled as
from the told
He
pitch was completely
travel
any distance unless
him as
the island's French
each group of spectators, shook It
a
few
was obvious that soon he
get to me.
The I
cars or scattered
noticed a figure moving
recognised
I
hands, and sometimes stayed to chat.
would
on
fifty spectators, sitting
yacht,'
him
said,
'I
I
he
he
said.
sat
He
down
beside me. 'You must
didn't take his eyes off the
come
game.
thought the standard of play was very high.
think
we
have
a real
chance
this
year
at
the
cham-
pionships in Papeete.' 'It's
a
shame the ground
He shook face. It
his head.
is
so wet.'
'What we need
must have drainage and good
championships. That
is
something
69
I
is
turf.
a
proper playing sur-
Perhaps
would
if
we win the The
like to see here.'
Sailing the Pacific
ball
had gone into touch and he turned to look
moments, warming
to his theme. 'Le Stade de
few
Gambier —
yes,
come back and visit us again in five years. Perhaps we have built a new stadium by then. But first we must win the
indeed, will
me
for a
at
championships.'
170
Eight
There island
is is
nothing
many
horizon
there, just
days before
The
like sailing in to Tahiti.
The myth landfall. Maybe
reality.
beyond the range of
Perhaps the
vision,
appears above the it
has always
been
hanging over the
sea.
bow of every boat in history has secretly been point-
within the
ing,
world
in the
both myth and
sailor's heart,
towards some distant and better
place.
The myth of an
island paradise has
logical speculation; history,
poets.
been the subject of theo-
has shaped the course of cartographic
it
informed philosophical debate, and inspired writers and It
prominently in coconut confectionary
also features
advertisements. Tahiti has that placeless quality, like
Samarkand
and Xanadu: many of us would probably struggle to find the map. Tahiti
with tea and in
is
it
the stuff of rainy Sunday afternoons by the
toast, a fine
B-movie on
on fire
and Errol Flynn
television,
green tights and pixie boots, swinging through the rigging
with
a jolly cry.
Who
wouldn't smile? Errol's off for
the beach with a tribe of dusky nymphets, even
a
now
romp on
limbering
up beneath the palms.
Of course, we know the
it is
not
really like this.
condoms and hypodermics on
nialism, the
about
the beach, the nuclear colo-
techno drowning out the
171
We know
surf.
But
in the
European
Sailing the Pacific
mind, Tahiti
is
ends and our
ocean
It
I
steady
island,
and an
idea.
Where
imaginary geography begins
at
morning when
breaking water but seldom a
I
left
of
on
a line
the
Gambier. The trade clear.
I
of the noise of
sea, full
drop of spray. The genoa was poled
out to windward, the breeze on the quarter. tions
is
twenty knots. The sky was perfectly
north-west across a bold but even
I'd sailed
on
varia-
same course and tack since leaving the coast of
this
My
Patagonia.
the real island
have never properly crossed.
a fine, tropical
wind was sailed
own
suspect
I
was
both an
winched the
ship
sails
seemed
life
and
into place,
resume automatically
to
as
I
my view again became that off-
shore kaleidoscope of waves, sky, and the foreshortened rig
pendulum swing
describing a back,
my memory
When
across the sun.
I
looked
of time ashore was closed out by the ocean
even before the summits of
Mt Mokoto
Mt Duff
and
disap-
peared beneath the horizon.
The
fine
weather lasted through the second day
surged calmly onwards
at six
of Mururoa
a
Atoll.
It is
knots. That night
long
atoll,
about twenty-five miles, but
only a few metres high, capped in palms.
was
invisible, there
flow
is
wind is
dirty as
were no
lights.
and disrupted, but
could see nothing of the
I
could distinctly smell
it.
From
Behind
in the lee
clean as that blowing over the
I
the boat
as
passed in the lee
I
a
offshore the land
high island the wind
of a low-lying
atoll
the
open ocean. So although
island, for several
hours
after
midnight
Islands have a smell shadow, a trail
of
sweet fragrance, the sticky juice of coconuts, breadfruit, pandanus and mangoes, that spreads across the water final
of
extension to their territory.
a fresh
It is
downwind
as a
subtle, this smell; the effects
wind over such a distance make the perimeters of the When I woke at dawn the smell had gone and I
area unclear.
sailed again across a sovereign sea. I
saw
little
of the sun that
day.
172
By
lunch time the barometer
Miles Hordern
was
and
falling
of dry cloud
a sheet
the sky.
filled
freshened to thirty knots and the sea began to
popped that
a short
sail
seam
in the
and ran under
afternoon
about.
genoa running by the
I
lee, so furled
just the double-reefed mainsail. In the
passed in the lee of Tematangi Atoll.
I
The wind
fall
The
island
was
windward when I passed the northern point. From that distance no distinct features of land were visible, only the green fuzz of palm forests forming a broken line along the eight miles to
horizon.
By midnight
under bare poles
as
the
taken in the mainsail.
I'd
wind
rose to gale force.
second depression was forming to the north. a
rough but
It
It
The
boat ran
seemed
that a
was going to be
fast trip.
The wind had moderated morning and
I
to
thirty
knots the following
re-set the double-reefed mainsail.
I
ran this
way
The rain was often heavy, and both the Time moved slowly in the cabin. I fried
for the next three days.
hatches were closed. breadfruit chips stage in the
the sea a
and
tried to read, but
I
was bored.
I'd
reached
voyage when, unless conditions were good,
trial. I felt
that I'd
steep roll of the boat
time
I
be more intrusive than
to
grew
I
found
been on passage long enough. The
seemed
could remember.
I
a
tired
at
any
of doing everything with
only one hand, while the other alternately pushed and pulled against a strong-point in order to
never stopped. Wherever
I
me upright. This workout saw my rigid hand gripped
keep
looked,
I
around some bar or handle, arm muscles working in and out a piston, as if
clamped to
I
my
couldn't have functioned at
all
like
unless physically
environment. Sometimes the struggle to cook
some structure to time seemed quite pointless. The boat was running off a hundred and fifty miles at every noon fix. would be in Tahiti within a few days. The temptation was simply to crawl into bed and try to sleep it out. My bunk was
meals and give
I
the best refuge, but
still
there was
no escape from the sound of
running water: the constant, pressured rush of ocean parting
round the
keel; the flop
of spray against the washboards; the
173
Sailing the Pacific
drumming
on the coach-roof. The makeshift doublewindows on both sides of the cabin —
rain
glazing of the three small
the sheets of polycarbonate
— was
dirty
now
I
had bolted over them for security
with accumulated
and
salt
looked out to try to catch sight of the
sky,
I
the cabin the surfaces were damp. skins.
drinks.
spilt
I
and the contents sluiced
I
that
until they
I
across the already
might end the voyage
booted
me
a great barrier,
plained
why no one had been
in
wet and greasy
thought more than stay
on the
island
terrestrial paradise lay
perhaps an impassable one, which exthere.
was the ocean, and paradise an
Cathay, in an
I
of
out.
beyond
the Hereford
I
and
there,
Medieval cartographers assumed that the
shows paradise
When
a sheet
surface.
brought water
floorboards. In the ocean east of Tahiti,
once
saw only
Even inside on my oilFour days out from Gambier the toilet
running water over an already cloudy, scaly
leaked,
sea grime.
On
some maps
island. Fra
this barrier
Mauro's mappa mundi
an island in the most distant ocean. Likewise,
as
map represents Paradise unknown eastern sea.
The myth of a dream
island
as
an island off the coast of
was explored by the Portuguese
and poet Luis Vaz de Camoens. From 1553 to 1570 de Camoens made landfalls throughout the Indian Ocean, exploit-
sailor
ing the legacy
left
by
his forebear,
Vasco da Gama, whose voyage
around the Cape of Good Hope had pioneered the the
sea route to
east.
De Camoens'
epic
tribute to the sea. In
by Venus for tropical sea, rises
Vasco da
their trials
on
Lusiadas
On
is
a vast
and passionate
Gama and his crew are rewarded
the ocean by being transported to a
where they make
a
magical landfall on an island that
up over the horizon and moves
them. fruit,
poem Os
it,
across the
golden beaches, in lush valleys
filled
ocean towards with
waterfalls,
flowers and animals, the sailors frolic with nereids engorged
174
Miles Hordern
by
They
love.
Gama and
make
sleep in palaces,
music, and hunt game.
crew have discovered the
his
Now
the door to global communication. their voyages can lead to
sea,
Da
they have opened
the sailors learn that
more than commerce and conquest;
the South Seas their souls find peace, they live a
from
free
life
in
pain in an island-garden of other-worldly beauty.
on
After lunch
the third day
I
passed a group of three small
A
the nearest being Nukutepipi.
From
of Hereheretue.
open water
miles of
the cockpit.
It
here
my
to Tahiti.
day
later
was another miserable
knots, the breaking seas remorseless.
much of that day, the
I
wind
wore an
afternoon in at
over thirty
oilskin jacket
stood facing the front, holding the spray-hood for support.
very mild. After several hours
my
bare legs were
still
though they were wet from spray and occasional beginning to
working sick
of
sitting in the
and
the tropics
stuck
As
I
that
it
this
cabin. After
I
would never go
comes
best,
rain.
I
was
I
wanted.
weeks of easy I
I
was
living in
wondered how
I
had
to
is
high-latitude sailing again.
night, but in a gale, or even just in strong
that passage to Tahiti, there
which was what
I
wanted
tired
to
darkness.
I
made myself promise
the long nights. In fine weather the tropical sea
life at
had on
I
but also sometimes the worst, thing about sailing in
found on deck then. Standing be so
wanted
is little
in the cockpit
on
that
winds
pleasure to be
was
a
workout,
to inflict on myself that afternoon. I would sleep through the long hours of become so exhausted and cold that I could
wanted to
I
again face the thought of pulling the hatch closed behind lying
was
not cold,
and leg muscles always
was what
free access to the deck,
It
and
out in the cabin for days on end in the Southern Ocean.
the tropics
I
damp
my arm
and
stood in the cockpit that afternoon
The
as
feel physically tired,
to maintain balance,
atolls,
windward three hundred
sailed to
course lay across spent
I
I
me and
worn-out bunk, the thirty-year-old foam mattress
175
Sailing the Pacific
collapsed into a falling
ofFm
permanent hollow, the vinyl cover cracked and
quickly after that. If
my
meal
and damp.
shreds, the feather pillow prickly
On passage to Tahiti the sun set at 6:15 p.m. cooked and
I
ate slowly
eight o'clock. After that
till
Darkness
it
was
a
I
fell
very
could spin out
very long night,
and when the weather was bad there was nowhere to go but bed. Those hours until days.
I
hoped
that this
dawn had passed so slowly new strategy might allow
over the
last
for a better
night's rest. I
stood stubbornly in the cockpit until sunset. Afterwards, in
the cabin, stained
turned on
I
brown
my bunk
My
in.
Then
was eight o'clock.
I
dinner looked and tasted brown.
I
killed the last
flooded
ories, to suit this child's
lamp and
my mind
bedtime.
I
dawn. The rain began again, the pictured go-kart races felt
I
down
thought that in
risking a gybe
my
the quarter, In
my
thoughts
— then
But
On
I
as
I
I
this
memway
and sleep
a little quieter.
the boat surfed
my body
as
I
till I
down
the boat
second with the wind dead astern raced off with the breeze safely on
weight again
dered sore-necked tion.
a
it
place,
seemed
tension spread through
balanced precariously for
—
sea
the lawn
a
tried to sleep.
with childhood
might transport myself to another time and
the swells.
moved through
read for an hour, mechanically turning pages
I
hadn't taken It
glow.
the lights and
all
settling firmly in the lee-cloth.
dallied in tree houses
and rock pools, wan-
in a starchy collar at
some golf club func-
couldn't sleep, or convince myself that this dank
cabin was anywhere but here and now. At 10 p.m.
over the lee-cloth, and desperately gulped
brown cabin
a
mug
of
I
climbed
rum
in the
light.
In June 1766 the
Royal Society sent Wallis and Carteret
to search
for the Southern Continent. The navigators found no Southland, but in
June of the following year Wallis made 176
landfall
on
Miles Hordern
a spectacular volcanic
known
pinnacle in
Europeans.
to
He
mid
Pacific, previously
transcribed
the
un-
name
native
as
'Otaheite', so turning the mere mention of the island into an
expression of both longing and sadness: Oh-Tahiti. In his journal
crew
Wallis describes Tahiti as the 'Garden of Eden'. His
are
thought to have introduced venereal disease there.
But perhaps
it
was Louis-Antoine de Bougainville's
Tahiti a year later that,
more than any other European
arrival in
landfall in
the Pacific, defined the South Sea islands as an erotic paradise.
After clearing the Magellan Strait and sailing north-west for the Juan Fernandez group, Bougainville searched for the ical
He
Davis Land in the ocean west of Chile.
into Polynesia. in Tahiti
What happened
changed the
in the days following his landfall
He
island for good.
wrote:
'As
The
approached the land the natives surrounded the
ships.
of canoes about the vessel was so heavy that
we had
mooring amid the crowd and the "tayo",
of
it.'
which means
Many
of the
women
noise.
They
and giving us
friend,
a
all
woman,
to
keep
men
to follow her ashore,
at
hundred Frenchmen, young
women
to
be made
work, in the midst of such
for six
In spite of
sailors
...
I
ask
in
how
a spectacle, four
who
have seen no
months?
all
our precautions, one young
came aboard and got onto
woman
the poop, and stood by
one
of the hatches above the capstan. This hatch was
opened
to give
The young fall
girl
some
air to
those
who
were working.
negligently allowed her loincloth to
to the ground,
and appeared to
all
eyes such as
Venus showed herself to the Phrygian shepherd. She had the Goddess's
celestial
form. Sailors and soldiers
177
crush
trouble
came shouting
and unequivocal gestures demonstrated the manner
which her acquaintance was
we
thousand evidences
were naked, and the
pressed us to choose a
myth-
then sailed up
Sailing the Pacific
hurried to get to the hatchway, and never was the capstan heaved with such speed.
named
Bougainville
home of Aphrodite,
the island
'Nouvelle-Cythere', after
his discovery
the
Greek goddess of
love. Acts
of possession were buried in thirteen different places ashore.
One
of Bougainville's crew was
young
a
young
girls
who
if
was formed
I
During the sex
He
helped him undress.
'The whiteness of a European body ravished them tened to see
.
of up to
still
he wrote
at sea
Tahitians to
the
it,
men
knew no whole
were
home which was published in the 1769. Commerson wrote that the
a letter
November
other god but love; every day
island
is its
temple,
all
artist
women
is
are
on Captain Cook's second voyage
William Hodges, depicted the Tahitian
and the
women
astonishment
drew them
as
as classical
consecrated its
idols, all
how
at
men
as
statuesque heroes
fair-skinned the Tahitians were.
Hodges
almost white, and transformed their tapa-cloth
wealthy amateur, Joseph Banks.
'Arcadia', a land
Tahitians
to the Pacific,
nymphs. Europeans often expressed
cloaks, called 'ahu, into flowing robes like togas. a
ships
worshippers'.
its
The
was
land.'
The expe-
was Philibert Commerson. While the
Mercure de France in
has-
fifty islanders
gathered to watch, complete with nose-flute players. dition naturalist
They
.
.
wrote,
of their
like the inhabitants
that followed an audience
caught on
day,
Here he found
the island in a squall, he took shelter in a house. six beautiful
Prince
aristocrat,
Othon de Nassau-Siegen. One
Charles Nicholas
where 'we were
Greek names
to
like Hercules,
He be
Cook's botanist
described Tahiti
kings'.
show
voyaged to
Omai
gave the
Ajax and Lycurgus.
Both Bougainville and Cook returned from native islander to
He
as
Tahiti with a
off in their respective capitals.
London. Both men made
Aotourou a
remark-
able impact, being presented at court, attending balls
and the
opera.
Paris,
to
The Theatre Royal
in
Covent Garden produced I7 8
a play
Miles Hordern
about Omai. After Cook's return
of
a cult
things Polynesian
all
developed in Europe. Tahitian wallpaper, jewellery and toys were
Country
manufactured.
were remodelled
estates
Dr
Tahitian verandas and lakes.
Johnson's friend
include
to
Mrs Thrale
delighted fashion-conscious ladies by appearing in an island dress
made from
the tapa cloth of Huahine. Brothels performed
Tahitian dances.
Women were
Omai. While he was
in
Reynolds. The portrait
painted by Sir Joshua
Omai
caricature of the exotic,
a
is
both Aotourou and
said to adore
London Omai was
dressed in a robe, his dark curly hair
wrapped
in an outlandish
turban decorated with East Indian feather plumes and a jewelled Persian crescent. Later, he was safely returned to Tahiti, but the
expedition carrying Aotourou back to the islands
and he died in Madagascar, possibly of venereal
I
made
landfall
on
no change was
in the
noon on
Tahiti shortly after
out from Gambier. There was very
little
the sixth day
The wind
days.
in the south-east at near gale force. Visibility
still
miles, but less in the rain,
the land
moved away of Tahiti
is
with barrier coastline
and
from three miles a
rained frequently.
it
offshore.
As another
dark wall appeared over the
largely uninhabited, an area reefs
was
up
to a mile offshore.
featureless. It
appeared
disaster
There had been
to see.
weather over the previous
met
disease.
sea.
I
was
five
first
saw
rain
The
squall
east coast
of precipitous bush
From my position the lump of black
as a vast
rock rising from the ocean, disappearing in cloud two hundred metres above the
sea.
In the afternoon the land west.
With
the island to
one
fell
side
away out of sight
now the seas
the sky lightened above the boat.
It
to the south-
evened out
little,
was an easy afternoon speed-
ing north-west on a regular, powerful swell. At sunset lights
a
I
saw the
of Mahaena and of settlements along the coast road
nearby.
In the distance
ahead
I
179
picked up the lighthouse
at
Sailing the Pacific
Then
Pointe Venus. it
was
GPS
torrential.
the rain began again. Within a few minutes
sailed
I
west for the next hour, navigating by
on deck. Every twenty minutes
the rain was blinding
as
picked up the
GPS from
its
I
bracket under the spray-hood, then
pushed back the hatch and scrambled over the washboards chased by the
rain.
I
sat in a
puddle on the engine box, pulled
off my dripping jacket and carefully dried a
my face
tea-towel before plotting the position, so
paper chart. island,
but
if
The wind and
would
sea
Venus the
seas
heaped up and began
out of the darkness behind me,
my
calves.
I
I
me When
if
would
I
through the reef I
to break.
rounded Pointe
A
wave crashed
cockpit to the level of
filling the
stood gripping the spray-hood, shaking with sur-
around
prise, the sheets floating like tangled guts as
wondered
lights to take
passage and into the harbour at Papeete.
preserve the
ease in the lee of the
the rain continued like this
be able to pick up the leading
and arms with
as to
my
shins.
But
the boat tumbled into the lee of the peninsula the rain eased
and the wind was blocked out by the mountains.
Within
a short
time
I
saw the crawling red and yellow
Papeete two miles to the south, and
its
wet
strip
of
reflection in the night
Along
above. In the cityscape ashore everything was dripping.
the docks street lamps oozed yellow light into the darkness.
Beneath them the harbour was in crazy circles
on
the harbour very
loom from either side.
the highway.
easily,
motored
in gusts, the surface hull.
the
found the leading
lights into
I
saw white breakers over the coral on
across the lagoon, the
wind
falling
about
of the water rippled and slapping against the
Within minutes the sounds of the sea were drowned out
city's
hum
covered the water. Soon
engine of the boat cars
I
of gold. Headlights spun
and slipped through the reef pass. In the
the city nearby I
a sheet
as
I
I
couldn't even hear the
glided along the quay-side, mixing
and lovers and dudes on
I
was
at sea,
the next
I
it
with
blades.
There's no cushion in Papeete: landfall
minute
as
is
immediate.
One
had ducked ashore and was walking
1
80
Miles Hordern
along the boulevard Pomare beside a
of cafes and bars. There
strip
were drunken Scandinavian sailors, crew-cut Legionnaires, vestites, junkies,
trans-
tattooed bouncers, back-packers, stevedores,
bewildered passengers from a cruise
ship,
platform boots and leather jump-suits,
and beautiful women in
brown arms frozen
in the
strobe-light. I
On
followed the waterfront to an area of food land the gale had colour.
and diners called for more onto
The
rain
awnings slapped in the wind
lights,
tartare.
a stool at the counter.
A
near the port.
was illuminated by
fairy
palms thrashed overhead,
as
Chinese cook hustled
ate a meal,
I
stalls
me
then re-crossed the
a bar under the trees. I sat drinking beer until my began to droop - probably about half an hour. Then I
Boulevard to eyelids
wandered back
to
my
bunk.
The head-spin never that first evening,
on the
terrace,
of
a
really
I
and neon, an
lights I
sailed
on
west.
actually arrived in Papeete
Relatively speaking,
it
My impressions
heaving dance floor and rain
of strobe
the ocean, persisted until
the log that
stopped in Tahiti.
was probably
drumming
island nightclub in
However,
on
a
I
see
from
Sunday evening.
a quiet night.
woke early the next morning. It was difficult to sleep in Tahiti. The buzz of the city seemed to last all night. After the few, repetitive sounds of a boat at sea, I was woken that first morning by I
the warbling drone of
what appeared
to
be
merging over Papeete harbour. Container
Motu
Uta, the Empress Explorer from Nassau,
Panama. Their generators ran
Moorea
a
thousand noises,
ships
were
Pacific Star
night. Ferries to
all
tied
up
at
HI from
and from
passed every twenty minutes, their wash sending the
anchored boat into long, thin
city,
hung above
a violent roll.
I
rowed
ashore. Papeete
pressed out onto the coastal
the tiled roof-tops and
from the mountains.
The
strip.
wind and
rain
tree-lined boulevard
IXI
is
a
Today cloud fell
in blasts
Pomare snaked
Sailing the Pacific
along the waterfront, four lanes of traffic running day and night. Headlights had flashed into the boat's cabin long before dawn. Tyres hissed
I
A
on flooded tarmac.
and was flying
like a
cafe
awning had broken
walked beside the
was
traffic. It
still
already thirty foreign yachts were tied
Bronzed
figures
A
been here
a
rain in Papeete
of potter's
The
slip.
up stern
to the quay.
few of the French boats looked
like
long time: louvred windows were built
and herb gardens stood
into the wheel-houses
The
early in the season but
were stepping back on board with pawpaw and
baguettes for breakfast. they'd
free
streamer in the gale.
seemed
in tubs
on deck.
glutinous, almost the consistency
Boom awnings sagged under great pools of water.
boats looked wetter than they ever did at sea.
Two
seventy-
foot catamarans, hulls like bullets, waited for better weather to take tourists to
Marlon Brando's
bonito boats readied their lines left.
And
in the heart
of the
atoll retreat
- most of
I
much
the
tallest
stalls
last
the fleet had already
city the cruise ship Paul
towered over the palms and food Gauguin was
of Tetiaroa. The
Gauguin
and waiting coaches. The
structure in town.
cleared customs and immigration, then devoted the rest of
the day to sitting in cafes and wandering the streets, depending
on the weather.
On
the inland side of the boulevard a
back-streets surrounds the market, each stores
and pearl
dealers.
As
full
web of
of Chinese trade
approached the market the rain
I
set
Crowds ran for the shelter of its ornate verandas, hanging off the wrought iron pillars like passengers on an Indian train. I pushed through into the main hall, and nearly tripped in again.
over twin babies asleep in In the rue
Dumont
sacks of vegetables
and
a
barrow of watermelons.
d'Urville a truck was being loaded with crates
of dried milk. Three guys worked
in the rain, stripped to the waist. floral print frock,
wearing
brawny arms were covered
man
A
lipstick
in
fourth
and
man was
dressed in a
several days' beard. His
mud as he hurled a sack to the
in the chain.
182
next
Miles Hordern
Papeete was slippery
an
as
People pushed and jostled.
eel.
me
Scooters altered course to try to hit
(I'm sure).
along the boulevard to the post office to stood
at
against
I
walked back
phone
call
of
and
me
to
obviously off a yacht, wearing a red oilskin jacket
the rain,
exhausted.
a
man ahead
the outside booth waiting for the
He was
finish.
make
hair matted,
his
his
eyes
red.
He
looked
guessed he had just arrived after a rough passage
I
through the
He
gale.
help but overhear
had
a
broad Yorkshire accent.
couldn't
I
he bellowed into the telephone over the
as
traffic. 'Unbelievable! You can hardly hear yourself The racket goes on day and night. We've been here a week and we're more fooking knackered than when we arrived!'
noise of the think.
Landfall in Tahiti Particularly
when
is
different
you've
from any other
come from
the outer islands, having
been the only yacht
in the bay, the crush
prick the
At lunch time
ego.
sailor's
I
took
of the
woman sitting alone
in
comic
say,
at a table nearby.
'Oh, for God's sake, get
clothes.'
I
Her
ventured
a
a smile at
reaction was to stare
and snap her fork down on the
disbelief,
table as if to
shower, a hair cut, and some proper
This was the same attitude
island, in the
city serves to
a table at a cafe beside
the park and ordered steak and wine. Later a
in the Pacific.
I
met wherever I went on the on buses and
harbour-master's office and the bank,
in the market.
It
seemed
that the Tahitians
had long ago forgot-
ten to be impressed every time another sailor turned
up
in the
bay uninvited.
In Lord Jim, Joseph clerks
of
who
Sail.
As
firm.
Age
Jim represents the firm of De Jongh, his job to claim each incoming vessel for his
a water-clerk, It is
To do
this
foul weather, further rival
describes the profession of the water-
operated in the larger ports of the Far East in the
ship-chandlers.
own
Conrad
chandlers.
The
he must
sail far
offshore in a
skiff,
often in
and
faster
first
water-clerk to reach an inbound vessel
than any of the competition from
i
S3
Sailing the Pacific
secures for his firm the business of providing that ship with
everything
needs while in port.
it
Jim's profession
essentially
is
still
rather less formally nowadays. In the
of Dominica in 1991
than twelve
Indies,
was accosted by
I
towed him
and supplying
ventional
Rupert
island
retail outlets.
a
hundred
yachts, these people
fruit,
taking rubbish
available in
whole anchorage
for the
of
side
would be
by
I
long line of boats, opposite
a
side along the
very long shorelines,
them. its
My berth was the
a small
three times as
at
to be dis-
the boat from
monument to General de many yachts in the
orange pebble-dash there
moved town quay.
afternoon in Papeete
anchorage and tied up stern to the last
con-
solicited business so industriously
turbed by some puffed-up skipper shrieking abuse first
I
Bay. In the larger anchorages,
produce that wasn't
They
uncommon
wasn't
That
hands.
then clung to the stanchion while
first',
into Prince
did a thriving trade, fetching ice or fresh
it
most
boy of no more
down and paddling with his
where there might be more than
that
it's
crashing alongside, looking wild with exhaustion, said
determinedly 'I'm the
ashore,
where
operates
approached the
I
a
it
who came over the waves on a bare windsurfer board
half a mile offshore, kneeling
He came
West
people are called 'boat boys'. As
prolific, these
island
though
alive,
garden with an Gaulle.
By
July
harbour, packed
beach to the west of the avenue Bruat on
a raft
of reclaimed land following the shape
of the shoreline.
As
I
reversed in towards the quay
working out between the over
a
saw
a
young
Tahitian
He had folded his pareu
man
neatly
standpipe and was doing sit-ups on the rough concrete,
his breaths short rain.
bollards.
I
When
cate that
I
then went
I
and loud through
should throw silently
The quay
tight lips, oblivious to the
got closer he stood up and put out one
back to
in Papeete
to the water's
my shore lines. He
edge
as
arm
to indi-
tied these off for
me,
his exercises.
was
a
wild place. Tahitians came
down
they always had, and simply ignored the
184
Miles Hordern
of foreign yachts. They
flotilla
cast fishing lines
between
us,
boys
peed ostentatiously from rocks, children dived and bombed
hung dripping from
around, then
the shorelines. If they saw
all
me
watching through the companionway they dived back into the
Being
oily water.
anchor in
When
went ashore
I
He
workout.
his
me
asked
tied to the
quay in Papeete was
if
afternoon the guy had stopped
later that
took the painter and tied
had any spare rope.
I
same array of
to a tree.
it
West Indies and
throughout the larger ports in the
He
He
name was
Ata.
in prison.
Now he lived right here on the quay. Did
I
him
got
a
When
in
Moorea.
The
he worked out now, he hung
a crease.
As
far as
I
he owned. After dark he
could see
had spent time I
want
his pareu
this pareu
moved back from
beneath the statue of de Gaulle. ness. In fact,
His
a tart?
He
used
other he stretched between a railing and
second rope, occasionally stopping to make sure without
tropics.
couple of lengths of cord off the boat.
for skipping.
a tree.
had been born
Then he
turned out he offered the
It
services as the boat boys in the
their counterparts
one
dropping
like
municipal swimming pool.
a
He
it
over
this
was hanging
was the only thing
the quay and slept
never once touted for busi-
he was so cool, so dignified, so wholly Tahitian that
he could only just be bothered with
me between
his sit-ups
and
leg-kicks and crossover skipping routines.
When
the weather finally cleared, the heat and humidity in
Papeete became suffocating. There was not a breath of wind in the harbour, and without the
sound of
island's
clamour the noise seemed
and
the
fill
rainfall to soften the
to spread
from the shoreline
whole lagoon.
In the afternoon
I
walked out of town through the eastern
suburbs of Papeete. After passing the hospital
I
turned inland up
the Fautaua valley, a ravine cut deep into the slopes of
The
valley floor
was sweltering and
185
airless,
home
Mt
Aorai.
to concrete
Sailing the Pacific
housing projects daubed in
A
dying in the ground.
and exhausted palm
graffiti,
trees
chain-mail bridge spanned the black
Fautaua River, clogged with kitchen appliances and rubbish.
The rainbow
patterns of oil floating
shacks were trees.
The
all
melt into a mirage, ated by the sun.
as several
The
of a mape
scooters
made
the
whole landscape
the white-washed
villas
of
clung to the cool ridges.
river
I
passed the
was deep and
tree,
whined up
last
houses and came out
clear here.
at
A dozen scooters
down between
worn its bark ingrained with dust and mud. More
were lined up along the bank. flukes
Nearby, tin-roofed
days of heavy rainfall was evapor-
High overhead
After an hour's walk Loti's Pool.
the surface looked sur-
grass.
but buried beneath greying breadfruit and banana
trapped heat in the valley
Tahiti's elite
on
amid the swamp
prisingly beautiful
I
sat
the
into the clearing and groups of teenagers dis-
The pool itself was shaped like a treacherous muddy bank. Steps had
appeared yelling into the bush.
quarter-moon, beneath
a
been cut into the bank and
Young bucks
in
bermuda
a small jumping
platform carved out.
shorts did somersaults into the water
while their girlfriends looked studiously unimpressed. Alpha
Blondie droned from trapped beneath the
a ghetto-blaster,
The pool was named Marie Julien Viaud). a beautiful
young
the echoing bass-line
trees.
after the
was here
It
French writer Pierre Loti (Louis
that Loti
fell
in love
with Rarahu,
from Bora Bora, and succumbed
girl
to the
South Seas myth. In The Marriage of Loti, his autobiographical novel, he described the Tahitian landscape as one 'where misery is
unknown and work
and the shade, Loti was a Tahiti into
useless,
his place in the
member of
a
where each has water and
group of
his
his place in the
sun
food in the woods'.
literati
who
transformed
one of the great fictional landscapes. Herman Melville as a 'fairy land'. According to one biographer,
described Tahiti
Melville believed Tahiti should have been the place for the
Coming of Christ.
In
1
842 Melville had jumped from the whale-
186
Miles Hordern
ship Acushnet in the Marquesas
and
fled to the cannibal valley
Typee. In his fictionalised account of
of
this episode, called Typee,
Melville rekindled the spirit of Rousseau's noble savage in
describing his love, Fayaway,
as 'a child
of nature
.
.
breathing
.
from infancy an atmosphere of perpetual summer, and nurtured by the simple Jack
fruits
of the
London came
paradise valley, and
to
left
earth'.
French Polynesia
disgusted by
of Melville's
in search
what he saw
as
the corrupt-
ing influence of the white man. Robert Louis Stevenson, Somer-
Maugham and Rupert Brooke
set
the South Seas. James
all
answered the siren
Michener was annoyed when
his
call
of
account
of serving in Polynesia during the Second World War, which was intended to counter the myth of the islands dise,
was
later
musical South
adapted by Rogers and Hammerstein into the
Pacific.
Yet perhaps more than any writer Paul Gauguin
romantic para-
as a
who
left
it
was the French painter
the most enduring images of Nouvelle
Cythere. Gauguin used the south to turn his In his early thirties he
abandoned what he
life
upside-down.
called his filthy
bour-
geois existence as a stockbroker's agent, deserted his Danish wife
Mette, his five children and his home, and travelled
West Indies and then
to Tahiti in search
first
to the
of an island paradise he
could reproduce in paint. Inevitably, the Tahiti in Gauguin's mind
was very different from the settler live
reality.
He despised the genteel white
community of the Papeete of the 1890s and went bush
with
a thirteen-year-old girl,
whom
Tehaamana,
to
he often
painted
as
an Eve figure. Mostly Gauguin portrayed the island
women
as
impenetrable children of nature, but in the painting
Matamua he harked back
to the classical
imagery of the
first
Europeans in Tahiti with the figure of Hina, another resident of mythical Cythera.
This on-going saga of Tahitian fantasy has
a
strong connec-
tion to the sea, as indeed does almost everything else in Tahiti: is
a sailor's island,
and has been ever since the
187
first
it
migratory
Sailing the Pacific
Polynesian canoes
came
in off the ocean. Pierre Loti
was
a
mid-
a naval ship. Herman home for the sea aged nineteen, and voyaged on a whaleship around Cape Horn to
shipman, and arrived in Papeete serving on Melville fled his middle-class
two
years later
Polynesia. Jack
London
He sailed his own boat, Stevenson chartered
also
worked
as a
and
cold:
at sea.
he
in this.
later
in the
North
as a
had frozen
Sea.
So these
were men.
young man he'd voyaged over.
2.
in
There was some truth
novice on
merchant ship
a
on the French imperial yacht
men had one
didn't simply arrive in Tahiti, they ously, they
—
as a pilotin
did his national service
Even Gauguin had had
were blue-green, very hard
his eyes
was because
his eyes
Gauguin served
- and
life.
seventy-ton topsail schooner, Casco, in
Apparently
said this
high latitudes and
early in his
the Snark, to Tahiti in 1907. Robert Louis
a
California and voyaged to Tahiti in 1888.
experience
seaman
Women
thing in common: they made landfall here. (Also, obvi-
writers don't
seem
to have
been
very interested in the South Seas.) Late in the afternoon circled
my
blaster
was put
of the scooters. girls
were
began
it
knees and ankles.
still
in a plastic
I
to rain.
thought
I
bag and hidden imperfectly under one
The wading imperiously The
The scooter-riders were in shorts
Swarms of mosquitoes leave. The ghetto-
might
and
T-shirts,
all
water now.
in the
boys were becoming ever more energetic in their press.
of
Couples looped warily around each other
ritual
efforts to
as if in
some
dance. The boys' faces were daubed with mud.
imsort
One
couple half swam, half paddled, with their hands on the riverbed, to another, smaller pool downstream where they could be alone.
As the
rain
became
a
downpour they
sheltered beneath the
surface, only their heads above the water, angled forwards to keep
the explosive drops from their eyes.
On my
last visit
distant parts
I
had bussed to
sights.
Fd also walked
to Tahiti, eight years earlier,
of the coastline to see various
188
Miles Hordern
the two-day track through the island's vertiginous core.
why
easy to see
garden.
the
first
On either side
It
was
Europeans had described Tahiti
as a
of the track
gullies
were choked with the
red berries of mati and puarata, while ahead emerald slopes of
anuhe ferns, acacias, guavas and lantana swept
down
to the tur-
quoise lagoon.
But
was very
this visit
different.
I
made
little
effort to explore
the island, or even venture out of Papeete, except for the short
walk to
Loti's Pool.
inclined to witness further scenes
felt little
I
woke each morning
of natural beauty. Instead,
I
and exhaust fumes of the
city,
filth
and an
fresh
air. I
just ate
my
the jostling crowds, the tropical
Papeete was
espresso. After the ocean,
ate in the
the waterfront.
food
bought
I
and drank.
I
stalls
craving the din
around the port and in
breath of
cafes
along
and books. But mostly
clothes, shoes,
stayed less than a
a
week
in the city,
and
I
filled
time with an orgy of consumption.
In
this, at least,
nine days
I
at Tahiti,
was in good company. Bougainville spent just and was
criticised
on
his return for the
of the data he gathered relating to the island and
managed
a
more extended
stay
of
five
all
None
cooler,
time in the early evening.
and the children
who
the
less, it
was
the publicity.
Although I spent most of each day in the town, to the boat for a
poverty
people. Wallis
weeks, and conducted
various expeditions into the island's interior. Bougainville's voyage that received
its
I
By then
tried to return
the cabin was
played on the quay during the day
had gone home.
The
sunset hour in Papeete was bewitching. Flashing lights
from the container port and neon from bars ashore rippled weakly in last
the water ferry to
as
Moorea
smoke from
its
reef were
that
all
the scent of copra drifted over the lagoon. slipped through the pass, twin
trails
funnels just darker than the sky. Breakers
was
visible
of the
sea.
west, polished outrigger racing canoes
Their crews stood
at
The of
on the
On the long beach to the were pulled from
racks.
the water's edge wearing only a scrap of
[89
.
Sailing the Pacific
wooden
pareu, a single
paddle held across their shoulders like
a
yoke, stretching the muscles of their backs. As they pushed off
from the beach deep
chant was heard above the
a faint
then
traffic,
a
pump and sigh as they came rhythmically towards me across on
the harbour, like great multi-limbed insects stepping lightly
the surface. As the
last
yacht on the quay,
The crews
for these informal canoe races. front of the boat,
was the finish-point
I
drifted
around just
in
slumped forwards, breathing hard, splashing
water across their backs and
helmsman, and each crew
sat
'Hooooh!' bellowed the
chests.
up
stiffly
in
one movement, then
deeply pawed the water for the run home. As their chant receded into the west, the
last
of the sun
cast
Moorea's rocky peaks and
an outrageous silhouette.
spires into
Every morning the yachts in Papeete held love-in
At
is
all,
this
is
would
crackle into
the Papeete cruisers'
Then
life:
Net on
who we
Steve off of Serendipity. Okay,
Check
a 'Net', a
now,
please.'
by giving
their
name: Symphony.
A
Sanctuary. Southerly 's in Papeete
.
And
any boats leaving Papeete today?
.' .
.
you guys, have
fair
be seeing you further
check
in
now
winds and
down
fast
the line.
passages and
Any new
I
know
arrivals
—
please.'
Joy and Peter, fifteen days from Hawaii. Safari, and Becky, two days from Rangiroa, hi Steve, hi everyone.'
'Down
Zed
morning everyone.
couple of boats gave their names and destinations.
'Well,
we'll
to
I'm
.'
'Great turn-out, guys.
Go now
12.
got out there today?
today. Jonah. Kristiansund. Blue Horizon here, Rider. Superannuity
'Good morning
VHF channel
those boats participating checked in
in
Easy
kind of radio
an institution in every large tropical anchorage.
a.m. the radio
8
you
which
'Well,
Okay, so
Tide,
good to have you in port. Welcome to Papeete. moving on to the first thing we got today, that's the
it's
90
Miles Hordern
The
Weather.'
and was
depression south of the Marquesas had drifted east
filling.
A
ridge of high pressure was building south of
Rarotonga and there was
a shallow
trough west of the northern
Cooks. 'Any comeback on the weather?' 'Steve, this
is
Diane on
Sanctity!
'Go ahead, Diane.' got a
'I
weak
on
front
my
chart kinda connected to that
trough and lying west of the Societies.
We could expect that here
in Papeete within twenty-four hours.
You
'Sure, Diane.
copy?'
Nice contribution.'
The good weather was Steve off of Serendipity
Towards the end of April
short-lived.
announced on the Net
that a tropical
morning the
depression had formed north-west of Tahiti. That
system was upgraded to a tropical storm,
named cyclone
During the afternoon the wind
it
rose
and
conditions in the harbour were not too bad
cyclone was generating easterly winds
we were
at this stage.
at Tahiti, so
But
The
here in Papeete
which rose two coast. The wind was blasts. But the effect on
sheltered in the lee of the mountains,
thousand metres within
five miles
of the
gusty and glanced through the city in the anchorage was days after
my
little
arrival.
course the storm
now
came
A
as a result.
harbour.
Alan.
started to rain.
I,
like
worse than during the gale in the
Any
future threat was dependent
took, and changes in
wind
first
on the
direction that
north wind would blow straight into the
every other boat, put out extra shorelines to bol-
lards ashore, a cat's-cradle
of cordage that sagged and pulled in the
intermittent gale. It
dry.
blew hard
On
Raiatea,
the radio
two
wind very hot, and mostly reports of damage in Tahaa and
that night, the
all I
listened to
islands a
hundred miles north-west of
bore the brunt of the storm. Lives were five yachts as
at
were destroyed.
mud-slides, and
We spent an anxious night in Papeete,
one point the storm was
way. But by evening
lost in
Tahiti that
forecast to
come
on the second day the 191
directly
threat
had
our
lifted:
Sailing the Pacific
the system was
and moving out over the open ocean
filling,
to
the south.
Two
days later a yacht called Salamander arrived in Papeete.
They had radioed damaged.
the
sails
tender from one of the boats on the wharf
towed Salamander through the
pass into the lagoon.
been on passage from the Marquesas storm struck. The
down and
ahead: the engine was
A powerful
had been
trip
to Tahiti
difficult.
I
when
They had
the tropical
watched the dinghy
and yacht convoy move slowly up the harbour towards me. There
were three children on the foredeck: two coach-roof and
boy perched
a
furled with long strips of torn
in the pulpit, the sail
I
on the
damaged genoa
cloth hanging above his head.
Their parents were both in the cockpit. boat
girls sitting
When
they reached
rowed ashore and walked apace along the
Salamander was manoeuvred into an empty
my
quay.
slot
on the quay
by means of an ever-growing network of shorelines, boat hooks and helping hands. Several friends stepped aboard. The mother
now sitting on the cockpit bench, her face stained with tears. Another woman was hugging her. The father was standing bewas
hind the wheel,
on
away
for
standing around
me
dren were too sailors
his eyes
far
stalks.
me I
to see their faces.
saw something
They were mostly middle-aged
I
I
But
in the other
hardly recognised.
couples, retirees.
What saw was I
of mortality, the eyes of the hunted, seldom evident
a sense
among
In the near darkness the chil-
tropical sailors.
caught sight of the family from Salamander the next
sitting in a cafe
behind the boulevard Pomare. The kids were blonde hair
eating ice-cream, the
girls'
deeply tanned necks.
Mom
wore
a
She was reading the Washington
hair
had the price tag attached,
still
happily.
in a lurid
Hawaiian
shirt,
They were surrounded by
192
now
plaited
down
their
crepe-cotton sundress and
sandals.
Pop was
day,
Post,
and the shades
in case she
in her
changed her mind.
counting bank notes, smiling a pile
of shopping bags.
Miles Hordern
My
only previous experience near a cyclone had been seven
years earlier.
arrived in Vava'u in the north of
I
November, the there
next
reasonably well protected and
is
months based
six
in the group.
in
I
planned to spend the
Nine other boats had made
the same decision. As the remainder of the fleet places outside the cyclone region,
seemed portentous
Tonga
of the cyclone season. The inner harbour
start
for the
first
left
our decision to
much
The town of Neiafu was
behind
time: the anchorage suddenly
looked bigger and more exposed, the prospect of these melancholy islands
Vava'u for
stay
longer than
it
six
months
in
had.
sleepy and dusty.
The
ubiquitous
South Seas trading company of Burns Philp maintained a store on the
main
Gangs of schoolgirls with matching ribbons
street.
in
on the veranda. Inside were a few tinned goods, boxes of powdered milk, and freezer-burnt cuts of lamb and sausage meat. It wasn't long before some of the boats began to complain about the limited diet. Early in December a fifty-foot ketch, Flying Cloud, left for Pago Pago to stock up on food. It was a three-day trip across open ocean. There were two crew on the boat. They planned to spend a short time in American Samoa, where there were large US supermarkets, then return to Vava'u
their hair ate ice-creams
before Christmas with
On
the third
full lockers.
morning after Flying Cloud left the anchorage, went black from horizon to horizon. It was
the sky above Vava'u
blowing
a severe gale
and
seas
were breaking
in the lagoon.
We
heard on the radio that a tropical storm, cyclone Val, had devel-
oped north of Samoa and
that those islands
were being battered
by 130-knot winds, with most arable crops destroyed and twothirds
of buildings structurally damaged.
had met Flying Cloud ing storm.
The
at sea
A
long-line tuna boat
and radioed to warn of the approach-
skipper of the yacht, Steve, replied that they were
only eight hours from Pago Pago, the best natural harbour in the
South Seas, and would reach struck.
a safe
Nothing was heard from
anchorage before the storm
Flying Cloud again,
193
and no trace
.
Sailing the Pacific
of the boat was ever found. In Vava'u, the waiting was the hardest
At present the wind was not dangerous, but
part.
on the only
north,
On
knowing
likely to take.
of damage in
wanted
I
It
to
miles.
I
We
walked through
pick-up truck
sitting lin
on the
could
was too rough to a
cross the
lagoon
journey of some
and pumpkin plantations
taro
if there
when a
in
lift
reached the road. There were four of us
I
floor in the back of the truck.
was stretched over
six
palm
as
fronds were torn from the trees overhead, then hitched a a
lay
islands further
go into Neiafu to see
took the land route, which involved
I
group
soon we might be getting the same thing.
that
the second day
was any news and buy food. so
most
track that the system was
listen to the radio reports
this
heavy
steel
frame:
it
Above
us a tarpau-
squeaked and swayed
with every pothole. At the southern end of the lagoon the road passes over a
causeway two hundred metres long, with open
water on both
sides.
one
side
Midway
across the
causeway the wind
of the frame cover off the back of the truck.
It
lifted
hovered
moment, then the wind got right underhood from the truck, frame and all. We watched it sail off for some distance, then land in the lagoon. The truck bumped to a halt as the hood sank beneath the surface. We there for an agonising
neath and tore the
continued wordlessly into the town, our eyes
with
tears
from the wind, our
now
streaming
faces covered in dust.
We were lucky: cyclone Val took a more easterly course, over open ocean, and did not reach Vava'u. The islanders seemed unconcerned, and among the calm. Things continued
much
sailors, too,
as
there was a superficial
before in our small community,
man named John. With we knew each other only too
including the daily radio Net, run by a
only nine boats in the anchorage well: the
Net was redundant, but John wasn't worried about
His catamaran was anchored just behind me. eight o'clock
when
the
I
at
heard John practising. His voice wafted over
wind was
'good morning,
that.
Some mornings
light:
cruisers.'
'Good morning,
Then
cruisers.'
Eh-hem
the radio clicked and he
194
.
.
came
Miles Hordern
on
air
Good morning,
through the speaker:
No
cruisers.'
bothered to check in any more, and John did not ask
were 'Any boats Cloud,
He
was hardly
it
what had happened
leaving?': after
likely before the
if
one
there
to Flying
end of the cyclone
season.
did the weather, then ran through the usual categories.
'Okay,
first
up
is
Services Offered or Needed.'
Silence. 'Well, okay,
what about
Go,
Island Information? Places to
Places to Avoid.' Silence. 'Let's
move
until the
new
months out
Old Ones You're
Ideas or
.'
Willing to Share In the end,
New
to Hints, Tips, .
.
someone hinted
that
he should abandon the Net
boats started to arrive in May. So
until the
we
end of the season. As time
things returned to normal.
We
waited the
passed,
most
even began to gossip about the
missing yacht. Apparently Steve's crew
on
Flying Cloud
was an
ex-US Navy seal known as Dave Canada; they were carrying more than a hundred thousand dollars in cash, trusted to them by various individuals here to buy expensive items in Pago Pago.
somehow got ashore and disappeared with the money. But no one much believed this. We had all seen the black sky and felt the gale, though we were some three Some
suggested they had
hundred miles from the storm's faces
of the other
quay in Papeete:
sailors that
a frozen,
centre.
same look
bunted
just dissolved. This island life
sometimes saw in the
I
I
later
stare, as if
of palm
and sunset drinks had
trees
one thing
revealed a darker side. Cyclones were the sailors
agreed they were scared
It
was only
all
the
I
a short trip,
made
the passage north-
but the trade was forward
beam and the seas large. reached the east point of Upolu dawn on the fourth day. In the lee of the island the wind fell
of the at
Samoa.
that
of.
At the end of the cyclone season east to
recognised on the
old certainties had
still,
I
but the east swell was running high:
195
I
motored laboriously
Sailing the Pacific
down heat
the coast, the boat rolling from gunwale to gunwale, the
The harbour
stifling.
open
the reef and an
at
Apia
formed by
is
deep recess in
a
exposed to any wind or swell from the
bay,
Robert Louis Stevenson was so unimpressed by
north.
it
that
he
referred to the 'so-called harbour at Apia'. Since Stevenson's day it
had been improved by the addition of a short breakwater from
the eastern point, but
of this structure
as
I
approached
now was
saw
I
that
all
remained
that
awash in the middle of
a small section
the harbour entrance: the rest had been carried away by cyclone Val.
On
the far side of the entrance a bank of sand and coral
rubble the size of a runway had been thrown up by the
Whole
seas.
Ashore,
many houses had
stove in.
A warehouse complex on the east side had disappeared.
On
walls
had been
where once had been beaches of yellow
the south coast,
sand, sheets of
lost their roofs.
smooth black rock now
down to the sea, the And in the hills inland,
led
sand washed away by vast breaking swells.
thousands of trees rose without branches or foliage,
of telegraph poles, or
like a forest
scene from the trenches.
a
Robert Louis Stevenson
also arrived in
Apia in the aftermath
of a cyclone. This was in the days before such events were given names, and
this
one
generally referred to simply as the 'great
is
mid March seven
hurricane of 1889'. In
foreign warships were
anchored in Apia harbour, together with vessels.
six
other merchant
The storm came on during the night. By dawn,
son wrote in
A
Footnote
to
History, 'In the pressure
was
The Eberwas with the
loss
clearly if darkly visible first
of eighty
out to
sea,
lives.
By
'a
a great rain.'
and foundered on the reef
the time the
wind abated, eleven managed to limp
destroyed; only the Calliope
and survive
in
open
water.
The beach was 'heaped
high with the debris of ships and the wreck of mountain
and
squalls,
them
amid driving mist and
to drag her anchors,
more ships had been
Steven-
of the
the bay was obscured as if by midnight, but between part of it
as
forests',
horde of castaways'.
One
other vessel in
Samoan waters 196
at
the time of the cyclone
Miles Hordern
also survived.
A sixty-four-ton
rode out the storm
and
spars intact.
Reid, a
who
The
trading schooner
then put in
at sea,
skipper was a
at
named
Equator
Pago Pago with
all sails
young Scot named Edwin
arrived in Apia in the days after the storm, wearing
Highland bonnet and carrying
a cargo
of pigs to relieve the
tlement. Stevenson, in Hawaii, was so impressed
when he
set-
heard
of Reid's seamanship that he chartered the schooner Equator to carry the Stevenson family
on
their last Pacific cruise, to
Though Reid was only twenty-seven
years old,
On
Stevenson had great faith in his
abilities.
from Hawaii through the Gilbert
Islands the
Apia
seems that
the cruise south
two men discussed
going into the copra trade together under the name
&
it
'Jekyll,
Hyde
Reid because the Equator Samoa when so many other,
Co.' Specifically Stevenson picked
had survived the great cyclone larger ships
had not.
He
is
at
believed to have had a particular fear
of Pacific cyclones. Critics recognise that whereas Melville characterised the threat of the sea in terms of the creatures that
inhabited
theme
it,
had brought 'I
In
Stevenson's fear of tropical storms
is
a constant
He would only trust a skipper who command safely through a cyclone. He wrote:
in his Pacific writings. his
have always feared the sound of the wind beyond everything.
my
hell
it
would always blow
a gale.'
After the cyclone scare in Papeete several days.
met
There were
no one
Diem had
the anchorage for
on the quay
I
had
and currents means
that
several other boats
before: the rotating nature of winds
people are recycled.
left
heard on the Net one morning that Carpe
I
charts for sale ('Buy, Sell, Trade, or Part Exchange').
had previously met four boats named Carpe Diem, and
one of them: we had shared an anchorage Marquesas, seven years
earlier. It
was
a heavy,
ing boat popular with Californians. led onto the stern.
The winches and 197
this
I
was
several times in the
double-ended cruis-
An aluminium
gangplank
instruments were covered
Sailing the Pacific
in beige canvas, the spray-hood delier
and awnings matched.
A
chan-
of green bananas hung from the boom.
Zack climbed through the companionway and crushed look beat up, Miles.
of doughnuts across the charts
and
keep the
I
We
greed
own kind,
here.'
'I
me. Zack showed
me
the
You
don't want your money, son.
got plenty. These bloodsuckers will soon be
charging you harbour It's all
table towards
asked the price.
charts.
my
Mary was watching a video. She said, 'You Get some rest. Eat some.' She pushed a plate
hand. In the cabin,
and the
fees,
The
sailors
taxi drivers will take the rest.
were often generous towards
but distrustful of people ashore. Zack and
same time, standing
into Papeete at the
I
their
had cleared
in line together in the
customs, immigration and harbourmaster's
and
offices,
I'd lis-
tened to him grumble about the form-filling and bureaucracy that follows each landfall.
The government was out
to tax you,
customs
your boat, shopkeepers to
rip
officers to invade
boat boys to hassle you. Like boat. In Papeete until
you
left
you had
port.
to
many sailors, Zack had a hand any weapons over
you
rifle
off,
on the
to the police
saw Zack shuffling disconsolately along the
I
quayside towards the police station in flip-flops and sun-visor, a
gun-bag under
his
arm. Landfall meant an act of surrender.
Carpe Diem was
were on
a
big boat, twenty-five tons. All three
electric furlers.
Mary never touched
There were two
auto-pilots:
They had
the wheel.
sails
Zack and
a generator,
water-
maker, and radar with compatible electronic chart-plotter. They carried charts for the
whole world on compact
discs,
which was
why they were happy to give some paper charts to me. Zack and Mary were both in their sixties, and he was able to sail the boat alone.
The
cabin was air-conditioned, upholstered in leather,
with maple trim. The wrap-around galley worktops were formed
from
a single stainless-steel
he been born
a
stamping. Zack told
me once that had
generation earlier he wouldn't have been inter-
ested in the sea; he
along with everyone
would have else.
He
retired
some
place like Florida
thought he was lucky to have wit-
98
Miles Hordern
nessed the revolution in boat-building and navigational technol-
ogy
als as
to individu-
never before.
The is
two decades, had opened up the oceans
that, in
idea that Utopia might be achieved through technology
not new. At the beginning of the nineteenth century Claude
Henri de Saint-Simon recognised
how communication
net-
works could promote individual freedom. Starting with railways and
then telegraphs, telephones, and
canals,
in the free flow
Verne was
and the
but Verne's
sea,
worked
The
Many
sailors
were engineers
most
surely
of his
stories
concerned
were technocrats and
who
built
mines and
ships
scientists;
and
factories
to establish the perfect society. first
information super-highway was the system of sea
routes established in the
wide web of
lines
Age of
Discovery. This was a world-
of communication that crossed oceans and
linked continents as never before. sailed
lies
of people and information. The writer Jules
a Saint-Simonist.
his castaways
finally the internet,
freedom from tyranny
believers have argued that
Many
of these routes are
today by people like Zack and Mary. While
kept an eye
on
his air-conditioning
supply business in
which he accessed through short-wave
via the internet,
still
Zack San Diego
at sea
radio.
see the California yachts in the Pacific today as a continuation a
much
older
wagon
search of El Dorado.
They
play volleyball
on CD. For them,
time: a point in across the
evolution
when
is
rail,
not
and
libertarians,
latte.
They
who bank
couldn't stay long
Mary were going
are the
offshore,
Mary
a
individuals can set off still
have
live there as well.
that
morning. Zack and
ate the last
doughnut while
helped Zack get the dive bottles into the dinghy.
199
but
chosen generation of techno-
and
on Carpe Diem
diving.
in
listen to
a place,
ocean to the farthest corners of the earth and
hair-dryers and
I
human
paradise
still
on the beach, have
steel-dome barbecues clipped to the stern
Jimmy
of
train that's just kept rolling west, over the
Rockies, beyond the coastline, and out across the ocean,
Buffet
I
Mary
I
said,
Sailing the Pacific
'Diving
is
like flying, that's
how
it
feels
—
the same thing.' There are few goodbyes
the sea and the sky are
on
boats. Paths cross as
the result of a combination of the season, winds, currents, and
chance. As
I
walked
rolled beneath
home
my arm,
I
along the quay, six
US Navy
charts
saw them motoring towards the barrier
reef north of Faaa.
That morning
I
the market. Before
south-west
down
got a clearance and bought fresh produce
noon
I
was through the
the Chenal de Moorea.
200
pass
at
and heading
Nine
Tahiti and
Moorea were on
when
suspected that something was wrong.
first
I
the horizon to the north-east
The
islands
looked one-dimensional, quite black. They had taken on the quality of land in the far distance: seen
from the deck of a small
my foreground were
already threatening their
yacht, waves shores.
The
from
now
become disconnected from on the high seas, it would
land seemed to have
whatever once moored drift away,
it.
Floating
or be overrun by the ocean.
down on the cockpit bench and winced as my stomach turned. The weather was set fair. High pressure was re-established I
sat
south of Rarotonga and the trade was a steady fifteen knots.
beamed through
strong tropical sun
my
stomach was
that
all
was not
would be I'd
been
a
well.
known
a sickly
a passage.
but
slight, I
wished
quantity.
puff-ball cloud.
felt listless,
I
it
I
first
I
left
New
running before
a
big swell,
thick with cigarette
tinned
ham and
I'd
sit
days of I
felt
had no problem
below, the sealed cabin
smoke and fumes from
drinking beer.
first
On the recent passage to Tahiti,
could
I
for the
sailing
Zealand for Patagonia,
queasy until two hundred miles offshore. But
with motion sickness since then.
as that at least
went blue-water
crewman, often of little use
Even when
pain in
increasingly suspicious
was sea-sickness,
When
The
A
And
201
although
the stove, frying I
have never been
Sailing the Pacific
particularly careful with
any sort of poisoning
few
In fact, the
food on the boat,
I
had never suffered
at sea until this point.
experienced while living
illnesses I've
have resulted from contact with land. Perhaps
on
ing. Landfall reveals a filthy sailor
has spent the
last
weeks
afloat
this isn't surpris-
weary boat, but one
a
sailing a pristine sea.
You then
that
step ashore
into an urban ocean of viruses and germs, and the weakling seafarer I
going a
succumb.
to
is first
had celebrated
down with
my
previous landfall in Tahiti in 1991 by
bug
a flu-like
that incapacitated
week. All through the anchorage there were
state.
When
took
I
complained litany
my daily stagger along the quayside
up beneath awnings
figures curled
me
that they
were 'land
I
saw wan
The sailors The morning Net was a
in the cockpit.
sick'.
of disappointments, and cheerful remedies from those
already recovered. Papeete was torture for the sick.
wind was
often across the boat, so
I
endless.
Crowds wandered along
lay
my
light
bunk. The noise was
the quay: if they stood
and leaned forward, they could just take
the cabin to check out
The
breeze came through the
little
naked and sweating on
hatches.
tiptoe
for nearly
sailors in a similar
on
peek down into
a
what was going on. Children were put on
Then
shoulders for a better view.
they dived into the water and
on the
splashed round the boat, pulling
shore-lines so the boat
up over the
lurched, dragging themselves
rail
to stare through
the windows.
Of course, is
a sad irony.
South Seas
it
this threat
the islands
At the time of the was quite the
Within two generations
result
With
the
was
six
wind
and reach back
hours away
it
had
European voyages into the
I
fallen to
nine thousand, the
sailors.
when
in the south-east
to Papeete.
a sailor's health
The population of Tahiti is thousand when Wallis made land-
of diseases introduced by
Tahiti
first
pose to
reverse.
estimated to have been forty fall.
now
it
I
felt
the
would be
would need 202
first
stomach cramp.
easy to turn about
to clear
customs again.
Miles Hordern
and the thought of the noise and nosiness on the quay was comfort.
hoped
I
it
might be nothing, or
a hangover,
little
and per-
suaded myself I had drunk more the night before than was in the case.
I
sat
was
sick.
two hours,
try-
a little fruit tea,
and
self-consciously in the cockpit for
ing to monitor
my own body
state.
Late in the afternoon
I
drank
I
fact
crawled into
my
bed and
lay
there shivering.
My on
my
other experience of being previous voyage,
western side of Fiji.
at
The
I
left
I
on the boat had was coming
sailing season
most boats were preparing of the cyclone season.
ill
to
been
also
the end of a series of disasters
on the
an end and
to escape the tropics before the onset
was bound for
New Zealand,
decided to haul and paint the boat
at a
decrepit, small boat-yard at Lautoka. This
but before
new, but already
proved
a mistake.
The boat was hauled from the water by a flash new crane, and I painted it. Then the boat-yard went bankrupt and the crane, the principal asset, was impounded in a legal wrangle between the receivers
and the owners. Twelve boats were marooned,
away high and dry on the land, while the out of the cyclone region. to
me,
who
The
rest
English couple
understood such things, went on
a
of the
cast
fleet sailed
on the boat next
PR offensive. We
were paraded before television cameras and journalists, the cute children and affable grandparent figures pushed to the front. As a gesture
of good will the receivers took us on
a picnic,
but
doubled the guard on the crane. After several weeks and no end of angst
we were
allowed to bring local cranes onto the
bigger boats needed two to
lift
them;
I
The
site.
was picked up by one,
and swung with road contractor's verve over the quay. The boat landed with
a splash,
but without
thankfully out to the anchorage.
The
a scratch,
following day,
planned to be buying provisions and getting
down with dengue Lautoka Viti
is
a
and
I
motored
when
a clearance,
I
I
had
went
fever.
hot and dusty city on the arid western shore of
Levu, the coastal plains and
hillsides
203
around
it
planted with
Sailing the Pacific
sugar cane.
The farms
population. Each
were
relit.
By
are mostly
morning
the
run by
fires in
Fiji's
large ethnic Indian
the harvested cane fields
afternoon the coast was swathed in smoky cloud
and the sunshine was
In the evening the sun set crimson
silver.
over the baked concrete grid of the city and the scorched earth
of the
For three days to
around.
hillsides all
pump
out a
I
could not leave the boat. Getting to the sink
glass
of water
left
me
faint.
on
lay hopeless
I
my
bunk, often sleeping. The anchorage was exposed to the west
and in the afternoons
a stiff sea breeze set in,
pitch heavily and snag
on
chain.
its
apocalyptic vision of smouldering
When that
making the boat
At night the land was an fires
and bursts of flame.
got ashore after three days to see a doctor, she told
I
dengue fever is
a
mosquito-borne
disease:
I
me
might be fever-
more days, and weak for a long time after that. I spent two more days on the boat. The wind was lighter now.
ish for several
In the evening the calm water of the anchorage turned orange
with reflected
fire.
That night the
city's
windows were
with candles to celebrate Diwali, the Hindu
When the fever lifted
I
sailed three
and
diffident.
I
it
was already
spent
filled
light.
hours south-west to the
shore islands and anchored off the palms. leave the tropics:
of
festival
I
knew
late in the year.
many hours each day
that
But
I
I
felt
weak
in a lifejacket
straw hat, drifting round in the lagoon to cool
off-
should
off, frail
and and
afraid.
Now,
as
the sun
went down
that first day out
of Papeete, the
thought of going about and returning to be sick on land held appeal. sailing
to
it would mean staying awake and much of the night, when all wanted Conditions were very easy that evening. The wind
Most immediately,
back inshore through
do was
was
little
light
rest.
and
steady, the sea
I
made almost no sound.
shivering through trips to the
toilet,
while the boat sailed on west in
wearing more bedding than
I
I
and to the deck
a black hush.
slept fitfully,
to
throw up,
By dawn
I
was
ever had in the Southern Ocean.
204
Miles Hard em
Then
I
hours and
slept for several
woke
morning heat,
to the late
soaked in sweat. I
had eaten
sandwich for breakfast
a steak
avenue Bruat shortly before getting
morning
a
food was bad, or
in Papeete. Perhaps the
on the
at a stall
on
clearance
my
last
had picked
I
bug before leaving the city. But more likely it was the harbour. I'd gone into the water that last morning, to scrub off any weed or gooseneck barnacles attached to the hull before this up
a
towards
final passage
New Zealand. The harbour was brown, full
of storm water and no doubt sewage. The local kids all
I
nauseous. pit.
The
I
felt a little better,
it
noted that the boat was
one
to
and
needed
I
still
on
tired,
sailing west, the
reduced
this
breeze again very
number made no changes. engage the sea. The boat
to hoist the third
and disinterested to
tired
on beneath
wince.
the lighter
sail,
I
'hospital' rig for the
next night
day.
The stomach cramps and vomiting stopped night, but
need
had
I
after that. In truth, there
to recover. This
a reliable nurse. a little
and
I
On
made
free to rest. If
redundant
I
was
little
felt
urgent
was an easy convalescence, the trade wind
the second afternoon the breeze freshened
a slight I
after the first
of that second day and
a fever for the rest
some time
feeble for
was
but no longer
my face made me
be fed by the poled-out genoa. But
was too
rolled
hot and
drank some water and climbed gingerly to the cock-
I
strength of the sun beating
light. Really,
I
in
the time.
When woke
I
swam
adjustment to the
worried now,
it
sails.
Otherwise
was only from seeing
An invalid could sail this boat through
really was.
I
how the
tropical Pacific. I
tive
my
bunk. But in the
after-
westerly course, the small
awning was more
effec-
usually spent the
noons, on
and
glasses
I
this
mornings on
often lay on
of cold
reading a book.
nest of cushions in the cockpit,
a
fruit tea
When
from
a
pot wedged in
pouring
a coiled
warp,
the boat rolled the sun crept beneath the
iOS
Sailing the Pacific
awning and
When
flared across the page.
pinned the leaves back with bulldog
the
wind demanded,
clips, so as to free
Whether sick or in good health, I cannot read at same way that I read on land. Sitting in my house, myself in a book. But at sea it is the book that gets stantly
while
put aside pinned open with
sea in the I
can lose
lost,
con-
the story suspended
clips,
reader watches the waves or paces the confines of his
its
small world,
making tiny
alterations to the sails or fossicking
deep
in lockers to reassure himself about an item that isn't needed.
the ocean a
At
parts.
book becomes fragmented
sea, narrative
tained for longer than
I
few pages. The story
a
wide and deep.
from those
different
all
around.
these places, but their presence
in
but one none the
less
any physical sense, but
mood
I
plotted
reefs stretching
of Polynesia
lay
I would never see the majority of made a difference — a distant life-
within reach.
still I
now. This stretch
noticed
its
I
couldn't feel the land
proximity, in the lighter
my less cautious footsteps on deck. my course now, saw the names of islands and I
away
Mauke, Atiu, Takutea, no bigger than the dot on the
across the sheet:
Manuae, Mitiaro. The in
islands
past.
about the boat, and
When
i
and
atolls
this
Superficially, the seas
had been crossing for weeks
I
a different quality to the passage,
of water was bounded: the
beyond the horizon,
a
seldom sus-
scanned the horizon around the boat, the ocean in
But there was
belt,
is
this.
part of the Pacific appeared
were no
On
into a thousand different
reduced to multiple vignettes, some
is
paragraph in length, others
When
I
my hands.
islands are
some of their names, but
the
names themselves
on the page, curving upward or around bour. In this
way
I
When
fight for space
make way
the shape of the islands
ungainly echo of nomenclature. Australia,
to
I
is
tor a neigh-
distorted by an
think of Africa or
immediately picture the shape of the land
mind. But when
I
look
at
the chart of Polynesia
206
I
in
my
see only clus-
Miles Hordern
ters
of writing on the water. The land
itself
hidden behind the printed word. The sea
almost invisible,
is
is
full
of
text: a dis-
course of ocean.
From
the earliest times writers used the idea of an 'upside-down' as a setting for literary Utopias.
The Greeks
allegories describing ideal southern lands
with perfect
southern continent
produced
governments.
Mundus Alter et Idem of 1605 in the imaginary Southland. Hall plays heavily on the theme of inverBishop Joseph Hall
set his
sion south of the equator, portraying depravity as prudence and
wisdom
Included with the text are
as idiocy.
the southern continent,
which bear
being drawn by leading cartographers century such
as
fictitious
at
Quiros
Mercator and Ortelius. Hall has
Mundus was published
set sail in search
New Jerusalem
his narrator visit
in the
what he saw
same year
that
of Solomon's Ophir, and established
in the tropical
South
Pacific.
Robert Burton proposed building
a revitalised
and Utopian
English state in the southern continent, to be called Atlantis, a poetical
maps
the end of the sixteenth
the imaginary land of 'Fooliana' in order to satirise as religious folly
maps of
a great similarity to the
commonwealth'. In
his
'New
Anatomy ofMelancholy,
published in 1621, Burton speculates that the Southland extends 'from the Tropick of Capricorn to the circle of the Antarctic, and lying as in
it
doth in the temperate Zone, cannot choose but yield
time some flourishing Kingdoms to succeeding ages,
America did unto the
Huguenot
writers
as
Spaniards'.
penned imaginary voyages
to the
South-
land to found perfect societies free from religious persecution.
There
is
an emphasis in
the countryside
is
this fiction
regular,
on
equality and uniformity:
and regularly
fertile;
cities are laid
out in symmetrical patterns; languages are totally rational; dress is
standardised; education
is
valued above
107
all
else.
These were
Sailing the Pacific
ordered societies, an inverted image of the greed and debauchery of Louis' palace at Versailles.
Most of
the imaginary voyages follow a predictable format:
make
the sailors
a
long and arduous sea-passage, usually across
the equator to the upside-down Southland are reversed. is
Here the navigators meet
where
a terrible
wrecked, and castaways are washed up on an
Few of these
a literary device,
seems, on the assumption that every
and the
baptism,
as
shore.
itself
is
sometimes in a
wreck
cast away.
becomes an
act
of
the sailor inevitably finds himself struggling for sur-
destroyed. Landfall
life
it
good voyage ends
voyaging
this tradition,
stormy water, the ship and
vival in
employed,
only becomes interesting once he
sailor
According to
storm, the ship
unknown
writers were interested in the process of sailing
Sea travel was
a boat.
norms
social
is
all
the certainties of his old
the process of being
washed
naked
up,
and alone, on the shores of an unknown world.
In
1
569 an imaginary voyager
named George
is
reaches the coastline of the Southland. George
shipwrecked and is
washed ashore
riding astride the ship's bowsprit, an apt piece of phallic imagery
given his task ahead. Clinging to the bowsprit with
him
are the
only other survivors of the wreck: the captain's fourteen-year-old
more women. The castaways set up camp on the shores of a magical new land. The women each bear between seven and thirteen children to George Pines, who peoples a new daughter, and three
land in his
own
image.
Henry Neville's Isle of Pines was published in 1668, and became an immediate success. Neville was a Member of Parliament and
a republican.
His novel
is
inspired by the idea of antipodean
inversion:
George was the
now
liberated in a Utopian
he
Dutch
is
ship finally
captain's servant before the
world of opportunity.
wreck,
When
a
makes contact with the group one hundred
years later, George's grandson
is
208
leader of a society of 1,789
Miles Hordern
None
people.
of the old
of
sailor
this
is
group
enough
will leave Pines' land.
The memory
to maintain his creation intact.
My waypoint on this part of the passage was Palmerston Island, a large but
Cooks. ate
I
remote atoll on the western fringe of the southern made landfall late one afternoon. The trade was moder-
and a bright sea was running. There
are six
main islets at differ-
ent points around the diamond-shaped coral reef, and the central
lagoon
seven miles across.
is
Cook in
The
three years later,
when
island
was sighted by Captain
made until Cook's third voyage
1774, but no landing was
was found to be uninhabited.
it
Traders in Tahiti learned the co-ordinates of the island, and a
Scot
named Brander established an agent at Palmerston and occaand
sionally stopped to collect copra
beche-de-mer.
There
is
no
deep-water passage through the reef into the lagoon and the ship
had to heave-to in the
When
island's lee.
the agent
left
in 1863
named William Marsters, who had been living on
an Englishman
Manuae, took up residence with two Polynesian wives. William, a
carpenter and cooper by trade, a native of the Midlands, had
been
a
seaman
for
many
He
years.
soon took
fathered seventeen children altogether. three and established each wife
group of the tiny
much of
a
his families ruler,
sand
hill six
The
a
and
atoll into
a separate
lagoon of 3,500
acres,
highest point, called the
metres high, was where Marsters and
He
was an absolute
kingdom in accordance with strict religwhich banned marriage within one family.
his island
years after William died, squabbles broke out over his suc-
cession.
The
British Resident at Rarotonga,
appointed William's eldest son Joel the island. all
divided the
and her children on
surround
sought safety during cyclones.
running
ious and judicial laws
Two
that
turquoise shoaling.
it
Mountain,
islets
He
a third wife,
named
Today Palmerston Marsters,
is
as his
Colonel Gudgeon,
agent and magistrate for
populated by sixty-three people,
who occupy 209
the three original provinces,
Sailing the Pacific
depending on
their family
Marsters's arrival
is
of origin. The anniversary of Father
celebrated by competitions between the three
families in volleyball, ping-pong, cricket
and
More
darts.
than
a
thousand of William's direct descendants are scattered throughout the
As
caught ing
Cook
and
New
islet at
Zealand. the northern point of the atoll
After that, engaged in cleaning the
fish,
glanced only
I
periodically at the reef and island a mile to the south.
did
I
saw
a
hidden by
enough
a
mist of sea spray over the reef.
my
to ensure that
easy conditions
activities
anchor
When
on
this
I
course would take
passage
around the boat.
looked for long
me
clear
of any
fish.
prompted
a
few maintenance
had noticed when hauling the
I
in Papeete that the windlass action
was
sticky: the grease
had dried and gone hard, and the bushes were clogged with
The
ing the mechanism with
with
a fresh film
ever, there
spirit,
of grease.
undoing the
at sea:
and then smearing the moving
It
occupied plenty of time.
onto
its
bolts. It
would be hard
whole mechanism off without applying remove
to the cockpit
heat, so
I
to get the
needed
to
where they could be cleaned more
then reassemble the unit in
The
How-
the internal components, the cogs, pins and bushes,
them back
easily,
all
all
bolts, clean-
was one small complication: the windlass casing was
gummed down
firmly
take
salt.
windlass needed to be dismantled and cleaned.
Tasks like this were satisfying
parts
I
haze of silver palm fronds in the low sun, their trunks
dangers, then returned to cleaning the
The
I
heavy mahi-mahi and was busy for some time winch-
a
in.
it
Islands
approached the
I
swell
was
slight that day,
the great plain of water
on the foredeck was an
situ
only
bound by
easy, slightly
on the foredeck. a
handful of white-caps in
the horizon.
twisted
roll.
I
The motion made many
journeys between cockpit and foredeck during the afternoon, to get a tool
I'd
forgotten,
a cigarette, a
210
drink.
I
moved
easily
about
Miles Hordern
the hot, dry deck, bare feet finding sure footholds. Certainly
I
did not think to wear a harness.
When
I
first
sailed alone,
was acutely aware of the danger of
I
weeks, sailing across the Bay of
falling overboard. In those first
Biscay and
down
the time, even
image of
me
the Portuguese coast,
on calm
ocean
the finest weather.
marked the ing
limit
It
was an
I
a safety harness
woke
boat's navigation light
something
irrational fear,
around and crept aboard the boat
all
all
night to an
at
in
believed that the toe-rail around the deck
I
of my
was possible to
it
wore
watching the
in the water,
disappear into the distance. that lurked in the
I
Sometimes
days.
sailed into the Pacific
life. I
fall
off the edge of
my
still
believ-
world.
With each successive passage this anxiety diminished. I still wore the harness in heavy weather, and sometimes on squally nights I wore it next to my skin in bed so that I would be ready to
walk the deck from the
moment
Southern Ocean
to cross the
As
it
of waking.
But by the time
sense of strapped-in security.
I
was finding the tether an
dragged along the jack-stays behind me,
it
snagged on the jury mast or windlass and pull
So
that fine afternoon, after seven
of using
a safety harness did
My fetish was a New Zealand
left
I
months
not enter
was
me up
at sea,
my
mind.
irritant.
liable to get
short.
the thought
Had
I
been
would have said that I'd learnt to manage my fear of falling over the side. But in fact, that wasn't entirely true. My fear had simply changed its form. The sea can do this. It is not one asked,
I
place with
one
haunt you
when you
I
sat
characteristic:
cross-legged
it
can reinvent
on the foredeck,
pin from the windlass and dropped
keeping,
around.
I
had seldom
The
Auckland,
my back braced against
coach-roof to combat the
front of the
I
last
come back
itself,
to
think you have conquered your demons.
time
felt I
was an improvement,
as
a
it
As
I
slid
this job,
the deep water
on
my mooring
screwdriver over the
the time before that
21
I
the
each cog and
into a bucket for safe
more aware of
had done
had dropped
roll.
I
side.
But
all
in
this
had allowed
a
Sailing the Pacific
whole
me
tray
of tools to
fall
what frightened
into the sea. This was
now, the thought of dropping things from the boat, partly
because
have done
I
too often and each time
it
klutz, but partly because
happens, panic
I
more
I'm
a it
my
I
world so sharply
dread that fumbled transfer of
I
and the subsequent barely audible plop above the
other noises of the ocean,
know
of panic whenever
seeing the boundaries of
at
defined, and so easily breached. bolt or tool
moment
feel a
sea,
because
it
home
brings
the finality of the
so than any gale.
My track record
not good. In mid Atlantic
is
I
released a pre-
cious whisker pole into the briny. In the West Indies a fishing-line
and
reel.
pan while cleaning and In
it
OffVenezuela
Auckland
hood when
my
glasses,
true that as
It is
that afternoon
between
my
dropped
my glasses
dropped knives
again,
and again.
the boat heeled-to a gust. Fortunately, the baby
next to them did not go
sitting
I
my grip on the frying
washboards from beneath the spray-
lost all three
I
lost
in the racing swells. I've
spoon, two books,
a
I
I
astray.
have sailed further,
have dropped
I
on the foredeck with the bucket gripped
knees while
my
I
less.
securely
from
tiously,
then reassembled the windlass on the foredeck.
fingers. In the cockpit
my
I
cleaned the parts cau-
possessions at sea, to guard
them
wake
might flounder there
know life
I
have.
But
in
I
example.
I
I
wish
beaten the fear that one day
I
I
its
place, the fear
of dropping parts of large.
I
must throw over the
cannot guard them
safe
side.
Food
my
dread the
of anything floating into the distance behind the boat.
yet there are things
have
in those parting waters behind the boat.
intact. I've
overboard has become disproportionately
sight
I
safe in the
cabin and cockpit, to distrust myself near the water's edge. to preserve the
sat
dismantled the windlass. Nothing
slipped
learnt to corral
I
And
scraps, for
onboard the boat, rotting and
stinking in the tropical heat. Peels, cores, stones, leaves, remnants
must be thrown into the beneath, or behind, the
sea.
I
always watch until they disappear
lifting seas.
212
Miles Hordern
The
made in the Pacific were as crew on a fiftyketch. The skipper was of the old school, a ship's
voyages
first
foot Australian
New Guinea. We
from colonial
pilot
I
generated a lot of rubbish,
and with two children on the boat there were nappies Plastic
as well.
bin liners stuffed with rubbish were heaved over the
without
second thought. While
a
sat in
I
milk cartons and
the cockpit reading a
packaging would
book, drinks
bottles,
come
up through the companionway and over
sailing
into the sea as
the skipper
petual problem
on
worked
The
boats.
plastic
in the galley.
my
Rubbish
must choose:
sailor
rail
is
head per-
a
to pollute the
land, or the sea? I
practise
what
go over the
scraps
Other rubbish
side, that
accumulated in carrier bags.
stowed in the
full it is I
is
stockpile
my
isn't easy:
You must
it
guiltily ashore
each one
is
the atolls have
when
get the
I
nowhere
to
bury
wait for a high island that has public trash-
cans.
Near popular yacht anchorages
ing.
arrived in Tahiti with nine bags
I
When
sometimes for weeks or months.
lazarette,
rubbish and take
chance. Often this rubbish.
wake sailing'. Only food material which is biodegradable.
seafarers call 'clean
these are often overflow-
full
of rubbish, the
lazarette
stuffed to the deck.
Now the locker contained only one bag, but
the residual stench
still
both
his
because
empire and I
dump my
environmental intact
— but
lingered.
So the single-hander's boat
a rubbish barge.
I
garbage on land.
politics
in truth
my wake is clean
appear to conform to the
of my generation,
am
I
can claim I
is
I
do preserve
my wake
concerned with something other than
pollution.
My
original fear, of
has evolved.
It is
now
dropping the tools
I
watching the boat speed on without me,
hidden behind
need into the
human head, made of me. am
each the size of a the sea has
I
warder, a gatekeeper. terror.
I
guard
my
I
sea,
float
lesser versions
of itself,
like
or watching bags of rubbish,
away on the wake. This
is
what
the ultimate retentive, a hoarder, a
live a life
of ease and splendour, and abject
boundary, patrol the perimeter fence, not to
213
Sailing the Pacific
stop an adversary gaining entry to
thing escaping tell
I
myself that
sea conditions,
all
this boat.
know how
By
fear.
have become a
I
made my
It
to navigate a course across the abyss, but
consciousness of
it
fade.
day the conditions were again too
nightfall the following
light.
That evening the boat struggled to make way
Later
I
dropped the
to the deck.
sails
an easy passage from the
me
I
start,
I
a light trade
wasn't tired.
returned and
boat
bumped
frail
sea-scape, the swell slack
along
putting weight in the
rig.
had been
It
restless. I
course for an hour.
its
in failing airs.
and without the wind to soothe
struggled to sleep that night, hot and
Before dawn
that day
reads
sails,
lines
there.
of the abyss
this hasn't
my
bone who works the
on charts, and completes the log. But comes from an ever-present awareness around, and a terror that anything should fall from draws
is still
I
world but to prevent any-
have rationalised
I
better sailor, a device of flesh and
the doubt
my
it.
and
re-set the
sails.
The sun exposed
shapeless, the
wind
The twenty-four-hour run
was forty-five miles.
I
The a
barely
to
noon
tried to prepare myself for a
period of frustration. Sure enough, the passage was soon dogged
by calms.
dropped the
I
was becalmed for three a swirling
sails
on two consecutive
straight days.
When
the
nights.
wind
Then
returned,
world of white cloud encircled the boat and
I
spent
the night reaching to the south-west in a powerful, wet sea.
following day the sun was strong, the wind lighter knots.
The
sky cleared of cloud and the boat ran
steep, tight swells.
complete
now
had seldom noon, when
felt I
I'd
so
I
proud of
dropped
a
my
ship
-
Time
The
at fifteen
downwind on
found other, small maintenance
finished the windlass.
I
passed
tasks to easily.
I
until late in the after-
blade over the side while re-lashing the
life-lines.
•
214
Miles Hordern
As the sun
is little
end, but rather of a
new
kindled in the boat.
I
whole
end of the
pot, 1.5
a sense
the cycle of life
not stuck forever beneath
a
a
fell
then
from the
functional necessity
took long, deep, gulps
I
down my
liquid
coming
is
the sun
Drinking now, towards the
meridian heat.
of expectation: the night
moving on,
as
to an
energy seems to be
after five o'clock,
drank tea
litres exactly.
mug, forcing the
a large
I
was an inelegant process,
day,
to re-hydrate after the
from
A fresh
my bath later,
boil.
coming
sense of something
beginning.
took
put water on the stove to sky, a
and the day winds down on
sinks lower in the sky,
the tropical sea, there
on the ocean
is
burning sun on
There was
throat.
again, the passage
indeed
still
is
turning,
a harsh, singed sea.
By the time had finished drinking it was noticeably cooler. The sun no longer had the strength to pinch my skin with the I
force of
rays.
its
shadows form
I
behind waves
fleetingly
some
the cockpit for
sat in
as
time, watching
the sun closed in
on
the
horizon. Life returned to the boat on the seemingly chill breeze.
The sun
sets early in
the tropics and the night
west through the Pacific or so that the boat was
my watch
I
new
entered a
on
passage. In theory
back one hour each time
I
did
found
early,
made
this
long. Sailing
fell
the evenings too long, that
week
should have put
I
so. If
the sun set soon after 6 p.m., and darkness I
is
time zone every
kept local time,
I
quickly after that. I
went
to
bed too
and was awake by the small hours of the morning. So
the tropics
I
ignoring local time and watching the sun master of
in
delayed the onset of night by a couple of hours,
my own
domain,
In the early evening
I
I
cooked
set at
command
can
a
meal and
engine box, listening to the radio news.
I
about
8
p.m. As
darkness and light. ate
it
usually
sitting
on the
cooked and
ate
sometimes with a book open on the chart table as well. way the cooking and eating process might last two hours. Between mouthfuls, listening to news headlines and reading pages
slowly,
In this
of the
text,
I
often climbed to the cockpit and watched the ocean
world change before
my
eyes.
Ahead of the boat 215
the sun was so
Sailing the Pacific
large
the
it
full
seemed
to quite block the horizon, while directly astern
moon climbed urgently above the sea. As
the line of light that these
two bodies
I
on
true nature of ocean passage-making, as travel scale,
was revealed.
my
of
By
I
had grown used
my plate
put
I
had finished eating the
I
and the pot into
The
the bridge-deck into the cockpit. the day and the sea was
without
it
spray.
now and
took
I
a T-shirt
In the cockpit
was
bucket and
I
open the fore-hatch
to
a result, a steady breeze
It
was cooler in the cabin
my bunk. Then
dishes, intending to lie
saw
that the sun its
was
light.
setting, the
down and
this tide
Night had
fallen
whole of that
Astern, the crest of each
watched, the boat
I
of moonlight advancing towards the
western horizon. Twenty minutes passed and
and the sky was
full
I
forgot the dishes.
of stars. The tropical night
has this power: an ability to replace sleep as the only
thought
I
had been
tired at
mid
afternoon,
form of rest.
worn out by
stood in the cockpit for over an hour,
holding the
steel
the small seas
my
feet
on the benches,
handles in the spray-hood, the boat
and gliding westward.
It
was
the
now
long calm, and the boisterous reach the previous night. But I
over
it
As
beneath the climbing moon. As
silver
was overtaken by
I
lifted
had subsided during
after that.
sector of the ocean reflecting sea
a
swell
from the locker behind
climbed on deck to do the
soon
was fading from
last light
now calm enough
being vulnerable to
was blowing right through the boat.
I
a planetary
to a visual feast being part
meal. the time
the sky.
rest
ran west along
cast across the water, the
lifting to
some
like riding
great
beast across unseen terrain.
When trades,
I
look up, I
I
lie
on
my bunk
during those perfect nights in the
often doze off for periods of time. it is
come on deck
When
I
wake and
wind generator
ablaze in the moonlight.
for five minutes, to
check the compass and
to see the
search the sea for ships, and find myself
cockpit benches an hour
later.
When 216
still
the trade
standing on the is
established
and
Miles Hordern
the weather
am drawn
the night
fair,
irresistible.
is
to the cockpit to stand in this
Over and over
I
world of sea and night
and listening
sky, feeling the sails pulling cleanly against the rig,
of progress bubbling up from the
to the sounds
again
sea.
astride
sit
I
oceanic currents, ride winds that have circled the Pacific to reach
beyond the horizon. Perhaps,
sea the drop
boat
abyss, the
drop
is
a drug.
was
strings
broken
a
dawn
I
no
felt
my
everywhere, in three dimensions, while
is
as if
from heaven's shimmering hand. night's rest, disrupted
by
a series
ill-effects
from
this,
of journeys
when
at the sea and sky. But
to the cockpit to stare out at
mountain climber who
caught somewhere nameless, held in suspension,
is
hanging on It
like a
hang over the
returns again and again to
At
unknown
the foaming white crescent towards
this point, surf
lands
I
woke
only disappointment that
the night was over, and another day had begun.
Climbing the
to the cockpit,
wind around more
washed night's
dishes
was
I
set
the fishing-line and brought
finely over the quarter.
now wedged
The bucket of un-
beneath the spray-hood,
last
food dry and hard in the bowl.
Landfall
on
a
reef
is
different
from any
so often searched the horizon for
other.
From seaward
mountains and
forests,
I've
or the
formless grey mass of a city with the detail of wharves and ware-
when you make
houses in the foreground. But this
moment of revelation
Reef
it is
landfall
never comes. Sometimes
at
of the lagoon
possible to see the reflection
on
a reef,
Beveridge in clouds
overhead. But today the only cloud was a bank of torn cirrus far to the south.
I
heard the surf
faint report, like the roar
line
of breakers appeared
buckled ocean. Behind
There
is
at
from
a
almost the same time
stadium
as a cleaner,
this line, spray
no dry land
at
217
I
saw
blocks away.
it,
a
The
folded crease above the
hung immobile
in the
air.
a ring
of coral four
mid ocean. The
reef encloses
Beveridge.
miles across, atop a sea-mount in
many
It is
Sailing the Pacific
a
shallow lagoon, about forty-five feet deep. There
through the reef on the west
side, so
it is
a pass
is
possible to enter the
lagoon and anchor in shallow, protected water.
The
pass
about
is
fifty
metres wide. In
a
few short moments
the seabed rose from five thousand metres to appear
yellow
strip
of rock and sand just beneath the
foamed over the
cracked
as a
The
keel.
swell
on either side. There was little motored gently inside the reef. The
coral close
current in the pass, and
I
lagoon stretched ahead devoid of
scale, a disc
of hot
light re-
by the shallow sand bottom. The anchorage appeared
flected
to
be empty. I
had
a
very tentative arrangement to meet
a friend
named
Pete Atkinson here. Pete was spending that cyclone season in Vava'u,
some two hundred and
had faxed him from Tahiti
fifty
miles to the north-west.
Pete was an underwater photographer and often
had received no
I
to suggest a rendezvous at Beveridge:
reply to the fax.
From Vava'u
worked here. I would be an
it
uncomfortable slog to windward to reach Beveridge.
motored
I
over to the windward side of the lagoon and anchored in the shallows.
From
around me. As
the masthead I
did
so,
I
traced the line of the circular reef
three black squiggles appeared in the
water near the boat: the unmistakable shape of sharks. I
had met Pete eight years
a seventy-year-old sibly elegant,
The
Marquesas.
earlier in the
Fred Shepherd
cutter.
were painted
grey, patches
of fresh caulking
newer, lighter shade between pitch-pine planks. bare, greying teak.
was forced
sailed
but kept in workmanlike condition, unpampered.
topsides
between two
He
The boat was impos-
could be
It
atolls in Kiribati,
to
jump
a
a
The decks were
demanding boat
to
sail.
Beating
the hull leaked so badly that Pete
over the side to nail
a lead tingle
over the
garboard seam.
He
tried to
of water the
come
clarity, light
numerous
sharks
to Beveridge every year.
The combination
reflected from the white sand seabed, and
made
it
a
good
218
location for underwater
Miles Hordern
photography. But ful that
Pete
now that had arrived, I
would be here
empty and remote
as
at
it
seemed more doubt-
the same time. This place was
the ocean
all
around, only more
still.
as I
couldn't picture another boat in the pass, or motoring through
the mirages in the lagoon towards me.
Even
if
he did come,
I
didn't
know
what
exactly
Pete often sailed alone, but not through choice. tised in
sharks
He
to expect.
once adver-
Dive magazine for 'an underwater model: must
and whales'.
Bridgenorth.
He
met Michelle when she flew out
I
like
got four replies and took Michelle from
Auckland
to
to
join the boat. She was twenty-one years old. bright, pretty, and
had not been
She had no idea what she was getting
sailing before.
into. Pete told
her that the
hop from Auckland
first
would be an
passage
to Rarotonga.
an ocean passage of two
It is
thousand miles. The boat met fifty-knot winds. steering,
and the
boom broke.
of the twenty-two days
manded
He
to be put ashore in
lost the self-
Michelle stayed in bed for twenty
took to complete the
it
easy island
Rarotonga
as
soon
trip,
as
and de-
the boat was
anchored. Pete was always looking for crew, and you could never
be certain whether he would be alone or not.
That afternoon tide.
I
took the dinghy over to the
Patches of bare rock burnt
brown
reef. It
in the sun.
was
The
half-
surface
of the coral was raised into hundreds of pentagonal formations. Pools of white water were swelling
windward the
surf beat relentlessly
on the
flood. Sixty metres to
on the outer edge of the
reef.
The sky spread vast and lopsided across the sea. waded along the back-reef margin, snorkelling in the shallows. There were clams here among the coral, their lips twisted I
into smiling corrugations.
I
put several into
a
bag, then walked
south along the reef towards the wreck of the fishing boat Nicky Lou. from Seattle. years. In that
The
boat had been high and dry for about ten
time someone had
come
219
to Beveridge
and blasted
Sailing the Pacific
the four-bladed bronze propeller off the boat with explosives,
but the superstructure was sat in
I
lagoon.
them
still
largely intact.
the lee of this great carcass and looked back across the
The
atolls
and
from the
landfall here brings so little change.
boat are the same
when on
as
rock to walk along
have
reefs in the Pacific
apart. Paradoxically,
high
at
perspective,
sailor's
The
sea
an
atoll
it is
that
and sky around the
passage, only there
is
a scrap
of
Robert Louis Stevenson des-
tide.
cribed the sensation of living on Fakarava Atoll release euphoria,
a quality that sets
madness
as a
came with
that
kind of slow-
on both
living
the land and the sea at the same time.
was nearly dark by the time
It
got back to the boat.
I
clams marinated in lime juice. At high right over the reef.
The
In at
my fax to Pete
the reef, and said
a slight
would wait here
chop.
calms that had held
I
expected to arrive
I
was already overdue.
me up would
have eased
motored
passage in the opposite direction: he could have flat seas. It I
seemed unlikely he would
decided to
of the
reef.
fill
my
my passage
But
three days.
west through Polynesia had been slow and
The same
came
from the south-east,
had given him the date
I I
tide, small swells
trade was building
and the boat began to joggle on
ate the
I
arrive
his
across
now.
time the following day by making a chart
On the Admiralty chart Beveridge
is
shown
as a
dot
to
be avoided by navigators. There was no chart of the reef itself.
It
was
a
simple drawing to make.
With
a
handheld
GPS found
the position at various points around the reef and
shape onto graph paper.
The
I
mapped
its
coral formation was fifty to eighty
metres wide, the sand-flat behind the back-reef margin about two
hundred metres wide.
I
measured spot-depths
and throughout the lagoon and identified heads.
ward I
in the reef passage
a small
number of coral
The wreck of the Nicky Lou was prominent on
the wind-
side.
drew the reef as
marine
it is
at
low
tide.
This
is
the convention
charts: potential hazards like rocks are thus
220
shown
on
all
at their
Miles Hordern
most dangerous. But cal tide closed in
water.
I
it
struck
me
that
on the
had drawn
a
reef, there
map of a
'Of Exactitude
In his story
was no land
drawn on a scale of i
empire whose
scale
point for point with practical
:
i
a chart
slight, tropi-
at all
above the
place that wasn't always there. in Science' the Argentinian writer
Jorge Luis Borges describes the world's is
had never drawn
I
one before. At Beveridge, when the
quite like this
with the land
first
truly accurate
represents:
it
'a
map.
It
map of the
was that of the empire, and which coincided it'.
The map was accurate, and useless for any its great size. Maps are of necessity
purpose because of
When you condense information, you change it. Most world maps today are drawn on Mercator's projection.
abstractions.
Gerhardus Mercator cracked raphers since Greek times: a flat piece
problem
a
how to
of paper. To do
that
had plagued cartog-
represent a spherical planet
on
Mercator distorted global geog-
this
raphy. In effect, his projection exaggerates the size of countries in the
northern part of the northern hemisphere.
World maps have not always been oriented on north. Arab maps were traditionally oriented on south. Mappae mundi showed east at the top
of the sheet because
tion of Paradise. In fact there are
jecting the planet onto a
flat
was the supposed loca-
this
numerous
different
page. Stab- Werner
the earth as heart-shaped. Fuller's projection
is
ways of pro-
projection shows a series
of inter-
locking triangles that can be unfolded in different ways to
produce unrecognisably different images of the these sheets the planet appears as just scraps of land
earth.
On one of
one great ocean with
a
few
around the periphery.
The Greeks did not believe it was possible sea. The first aids to maritime navigation, were textual rather than graphic. There
to
draw
a
map of the
the classical periploi,
are other
examples of
non-graphic maps. In the second century, Dionysius recited an Alexandrian world describes in
map
form of
in the
The Songlines
how
through the outback by singing
a
a
poem. Bruce Chatwin
Australian aboriginals migrate
map as they walk. When Robert
221
Sailing the Pacific
Louis Stevenson arrived in the Gilbert Islands in the schooner Equator he was given what he assumed was nesian 'stick-map': a
sewn
Micro-
a traditional
woven frame of bamboo
twigs with shells
into place representing the islands of the South Seas. Today,
however, these stick-maps are thought to have been copied from
The
nineteenth-century European sea charts.
Pacific peoples
colonised their ocean without the use of maps. These navigators
understood which in succession
stars
followed the same 'path', those that rose
from the same point on the horizon and described
the same arc across the sky. steer for a certain island
Thus they knew which
by knowing which
stars rose
direction to
and set above
The star path was used throughout the South Sea islands. known as kavenga in the Solomons, kaveinga in Tonga, and it.
It
was
'aveVa
in Tahiti. Navigators in the Caroline Islands devised a star path that gave thirty- two directions. Star paths
graphically or in tabular form. Their use
committed
to
memory huge amounts
were not represented
meant
that navigators
of information, which
researchers believe
was retrieved by means of complex mnemonic
devices: these
ocean
first
sailors
chanted their way across the sea
towards a featureless horizon. Today, the most informative maps of the sea are the 'routeing charts'. as
These charts show the continents around each ocean
well as the principal islands. But routeing charts are mostly
crammed with information about the water itself, and conditions it: average wind strength and direction at numerous fixed points; ocean currents; mean air temperature and pressure; mean sea temperature; percentage frequency of fog and prevailing in and above
low visibility; bergs.
A map
The
tracks
of past cyclones; shipping lanes;
sea cannot
be portrayed in
way on
limits
of ice-
a single sheet.
of the ocean must defy cartographic conventions. There
are twelve routeing charts for
month of the
year.
have had too
each ocean: one sheet for each
The information contained on each
often very different, depending I
this
many
on seasonal
occasions to
222
variations.
bemoan
sheet
Even
is
so.
the shortcomings
Miles Hordern
of routeing
charts: the
wind
hasn't
blown from the promised
direction, the supposedly favourable current
was non-existent.
Routeing
charts are
acteristics
of the ocean important to navigators. They are
still
only approximations of certain key char-
but not wholly successful attempt to
fill
a
brave
the sea with knowledge.
Perhaps the ocean can best be recorded only in the form of text: a narrative
of a voyage describing
a single line
of experience that
might never be repeated.
But even given the inadequacies of cartography, the ultimate traveller's trophy: proof that places if
I
you
a
map
you have been
is still
to the
and know their relation one to the other. So map of the sea, it wouldn't be complete with-
describe,
were to draw
a
out some mention of the places
empty ocean. The
sailors
have dreamt up to
shorelines of imaginary islands
fill
the
and continents
would need to be faint, so as not to confuse practising navigators. I would draw them as a shadow beneath the waves, like the outline of a reef submerged at high tide.
On my
last
evening
dinghy over to the
Beveridge, shortly after dark,
at
reef.
I
put the anchor in
among the
I
took the
corals
and
wind hold the inflatable boat free of the rocks out in the The tide was coming in and there was a slight current across the reef, flowing around my legs. The reef's surface was uneven. Mostly I waded through calf-deep water, but at times it came to my knees. Several times I stumbled. I knew that my ankles were bleeding and I began to worry about sharks, espe-
let
the
lagoon.
cially in fish.
I
other.
the deeper water.
held I
a
I
was supposed
to
be looking for cray-
torch in one hand and wore a thick glove on the
realised
I
had never looked for crays alone before. Pre-
had gone with the
and listened
viously, in the atolls,
I
to their prayers for a
good catch whispered beneath the
palms before wading out onto the
223
reef.
islanders,
rustling
Sailing the Pacific
I
made my way
nate the path the water
as
slowly
much as
smooth and
to a deeper channel
down
the reef, using a torch to illumi-
to look for crayfish.
silky,
warmer than
The
trade was light,
the air above.
where the water reached
my
waist.
I
came waded
I
slowly forwards, half-way between the earth and the sky, the land
and the
sea.
Surf roared and sucked in the distance, the spray in
places visible as a ghostly ring I
saw one
crayfish,
After half an hour
The
I
but
lunge was tardy and misdirected.
returned empty-handed to the dinghy.
following morning
for the south-west.
my
around the horizon.
I
I
gave up on Pete and
found out
Vava'u several months earlier and
He
had never received
my
later that
left
Beveridge
he had got bored
set sail for the fleshpots
fax.
224
in
of Suva.
Ten
It
is
difficult to narrate the events of that final passage from
Beveridge Reef towards
the event In the
is
New Zealand. At least, the events them-
enough. But to recreate the logic of the sea
selves are simple
hard.
first
half of the voyage
Patagonia, too,
I
I
had written
on the return
journal entries were
less
But
also
my
I
I
frequent. Perhaps
had by
its
I
never did
sufficient
this
any more.
my
at sea:
is
a
I
sat
more
at
home
of the voyage grown
ex-
tired
to record a diary I
of
my
thoughts,
resented the camera's prying eye,
The boat was my home, and life at sea.
I
Since leaving
my
actions
become
instinctive. In the
narrower range of things which happen to
a
wind at sunset, landfall, calms. I had things on the basis of reflex actions.
the squalls, rising
learnt to deal with these
When
felt
on
my
written journal entries had been few. After
time on passage
tropics there
I
a diary to process the
craved the privacy to lead a normal
Papeete, even
boat
on
this stage
associations with a stage set.
now
visited
every feeling and impression. In high latitudes
had used the video camera
but
I
passage through the tropics
crossing tropical seas, so relied less
of describing
a daily journal. In
kept a detailed record of the places
the journey. But
perience.
after
down
to write an account
were no thought processes to explore.
225
I
I
sometimes found there
was
sailing
on automatic,
Sailing the Pacific
and descriptions of routine work about the deck and cabin be-
came
repetitive.
By
the time
left
I
stopped altogether. So I
made
my
Beveridge Reef I
journal entries had
have no direct record of my thoughts
the passage towards
New
Zealand.
I
as
have no first-hand
source to help reconstruct the rationale of that voyage, and
I
dis-
imposition of one from a different time and place:
I
dis-
trust the
any voice from the outside
trust
a difficult event at sea.
What
strange passage was that
my
all
the others
did
I
think
I
I
when
comes
it
to describing
can remember about that
decisions
seemed just
as
obvious
was
sailing untried waters. I
skirted south of Meyer
Reef and crossed the International Dateline. Early morning a trough went through with heavy rain from and the boat plunged westward
wind backed I put more south of Eua,
a
dipping in the
I
the next the south
in almost zero visibility.
in the course
southern outpost of the
the third evening
sail
as
had made over the preceding months. At no point
I
On the second night out of Beveridge
cliffs
last,
Kingdom of Tonga. On
saw the conical island of Ata,
swells. In the setting
As the
and sighted the dark
rising
sun Ata appeared
as a
and
giant
billowing up from beneath the horizon.
My
latitude
now was
close to the Tropic of Capricorn, to-
wards the southern limit of the trade winds.
took
me
The
course ahead
through an area of variable winds, the so-called 'horse
latitudes',
where calms and
shifting breezes
once forced square-
rigged ships to throw the horses overboard for want of fresh water. Every day the colours visible in the ocean world were
The sun had lost its intensity at midday, and when it wind felt chill. In these more temperate waters the sea
changing. set the
was
a richer,
creamier blue, and seemed
fuller,
more rounded, But when the
without the glaring reflections of the tropical sun. sky was
full
of cloud, that almost forgotten grey colour returned
to the water around the boat.
The one
record
I
do have of those days 226
is
my
log-book. This
Miles Hordern
is,
in
some respects, an interminable document, lists of figures and
observations of the weather. But using the log-book and the chart in combination,
it is
easy to reconstruct the courses
When
the prevailing conditions.
theory
I
was taught to make
a log
I
I
steered and
was learning navigational
entry every hour the boat was
on passage. This theory originated long before the advent of elecand only insomniacs
tronic navigation,
the tropics rather
had made about
I
more on
the passage across the Southern Ocean. But these
averages are misleading, because
were
are so diligent today. In
five log entries every twelve hours,
my
log entries over the voyage
erratic.
Looking
at
the log,
when my
anxiety
it
is
were more frequent. In places these
entries
entries are hourly, or
easy to see periods of heightened
even more often than
that: the first
week of
the voyage, at times of bad weather in high latitudes, before landfall,
in squalls,
throughout calms. So, flicking through the pages
of the log-book cult simply
I
can see those times
measured in the
was good and the outlook
allel
my
I
sailed
my
log entries
I
became
was forty miles
in these waters.
six nights
progress
the pages are almost bare.
Over
increasingly detailed.
with blustery
out of Beveridge,
recorded
it
times,
and they were of minor
The wind was
certainly less constant
the course of three days
to north-east,
I
two Minerva Reefs three
to the north
navigational importance.
from south
When
south-west out of the tropics over the 24th par-
position relative to the
though
fine,
passage was dim-
entries.
barograph of my moods.
Indirectly, the log acts as a
As
when the
number of
squalls
it
of
had
shifted
rain.
Then,
died completely. That was a
slow night, while the boat pitched and rolled on the
still
lumpy sea, the cabin filled with noise and restlessness. By morning a southerly had set in, but it was difficult to get the boat established on its course as the wind was light and the sea still awkward. When the seas started to smooth out later that morning, the wind began to shift, tending first west, then back 227
Sailing the Pacific
to the south.
I
recorded each of these
details faithfully in the
log-book. Despite
one setback with the weather, progress so
this
miles north of
expect steered.
I
Thus
on
the voyage
week.
a
had listened only
I
might
I
allowing a south course to be
set in,
should reach Auckland in
far
I
waypoint four hundred
New Zealand's North Cape. Around there
west wind to
a
a
on
wind continued
the passage had mostly been good. If this
planned to head west-south-west to
far
to
BBC
radio
more temperate latitude I changed this habit and tuned to local stations. Radio New Zealand International broadcasts to the Pacific, a mix of regional programmes and those lifted from the main domestic station. So I began to hear familiar place names and voices. I was keeping on short-wave, but
the same time
same news
as
as
I
sailed into a
New Zealand now:
bulletin
I
ate breakfast
I
tuned to the
had listened to before the voyage;
meant
the same jingle that had once
seemed much further than
it
was time to go
I
to
heard
work.
week away. I reached my waypoint north of North Cape on the tenth morning. The last few days had been slower, the wind southwest. I put the boat about and sailed close-hauled on starboard tack. This course would put me just to the east of Northland, That
life
four days' sailing in this wind,
But the log detailed.
knots
less if
a
things improved.
entries over that day continue to
Admittedly the wind was
at 7 a.m.,
gusty.
I
recorded twenty-five
the boat careering over the swells, the sun catch-
ing clouds of golden spray.
Two
hours
later the
knots and the seas were collapsing backwards. things with earnest precision.
drinking too
much
that night, blotting
my
be unnecessarily
I
I
fifteen
recorded these
had been nervous for some time,
for the last several nights. it
wind was
I
did the same again
out with cheap rum, but was shaken from
more than once by the need to reef or un-reef the sails in the gusty wind. At dawn the wind went westerly for several hours, but by mid morning was back in the south-west. reverie
22!
Miles Hordern
At noon on
windward wards
that final day
I
recorded beating
a
hundred miles
heard the long-range weather forecast on Radio
I
to
in the preceding twenty-four hours. Shortly after-
Zealand and recorded the
back of the
details in the
log: a
New broad
trough in the Tasman Sea should maintain a south-west wind,
would make landfall in three days. The facts are simple enough: two hours later I adjusted the selfsteering and sailed the boat away from New Zealand. This new though
it
would
ease.
I
course was east-south-east:
would, eventually, have crossed the
it
empty wastes of the Southern Ocean and reached the coast of Antarctica. But at the time my concerns were more immediate, and related only to the conditions on the boat there and then.
where
didn't care
patterns that
round on lunging
was going;
to the quarter.
The
now was fast and free, long, down the faces of the swells.
sailing
months of passage-making, twelve thousand was the way it had always been.
that this
my
in
simply wanted to re-establish the
the boat ploughed
to sailing towards a place that it
I
had prevailed for months past. So I brought the wind
rolls as
After eight
seemed
I
I
mind.
I
was so
had learnt to
far distant
I
I
miles,
it
had grown used
could not picture
only in the present, with no
live
destination other than the sea. I
day I
new
sailed this
made
I
recorded
course for the next three days.
position at
noon each
the
first
On the second and third
four entries in the log-book.
my
On
day,
and nothing
else.
I
remember eating well and sleeping well, and smoking and drinking
less.
felt
I
that the passage
had improved
back to normal. Certainly, progress was good.
I
recently. Life
was
covered 410 miles
in that three-day run. I
understood perfectly well that
forever, or
stores to reach
New Zealand,
of water would decided
With
the
I
I
could not
even for very long. In Papeete
also
with
sail this
had bought
a little in reserve.
course
sufficient
My supplies
soon begin to dwindle. After three days
in the west,
New
I
would make landfall. Zealand seemed far distant. The
must choose the place where
wind
I
229
I
Sailing the Pacific
obvious choice was to head for an island group in the tropics.
Both Tonga and Fiji:
I
passage north, I
carried
come I
easy to reach from here.
this
had been here
one night
The
was
boat.
I
commercial harbour, well marked and
to
several times before.
lit,
and
picked up the leading
I
in early June. a
is
watering-hole for expatriate soaks
rugby on television screens above the
The
rarely interact.
from those in Papeete: there in
chose
had not expected
way-station for offshore transients like myself.
of patrons
I
a straightforward
My island refuge was not on any map.
voyage.
yacht club in Suva
who watch
on the
charts of Fiji
a large
is
It
in westerlies, then in the re-found trade.
first
no
here on
But Suva
lights
would be
Fiji
wanted the chaos and the crowds.
The
also a
The two groups
cruising yachts here are different
are
Suva. These boats have been
never intend to leave.
and
bar,
more
and pot plants
rust stains
and some
in the islands longer,
club provides
sorts in the sprawling, shapeless harbour,
facilities
which
and
a
haven of
otherwise bor-
is
dered by commercial wharves, ship-yards, mangrove
flats
and
landfills.
In the club
sent faxes
I
family expected to
and made phone
been unfavourable, and
that
I
was supposed
explained that the conditions had
I I
was in Suva. Few of these people
the geography of the region well. For them, the South
Pacific
three
My friends and
me to be in New Zealand by now,
be going back to work.
knew
calls.
was an unknown ocean of many
weeks of my
passage to
The hoped
life
meet
at
Fiji
me home,
and
Pete's fax
was
I
fact that
received a fax from Pete, the friend
Beveridge Reef.
north-east of the to find
and the
New Zealand went unnoticed.
following day to
islands,
had passed unaccounted for on an abortive
group.
He
He was in Vanua
I
had
Levu, in the
had phoned Auckland hoping
my housemates had told him
typically authoritative: Til
I
was
in Suva.
be there in three days.
Stay there.'
Two
days later
I
saw
Pete's
boat in the anchorage. Almost
230
Miles Hordern
immediately
a
blonde
tall,
ionway and stood on the
Her name was
girl
stepped up through the compan-
counter dressed in
fantail
islands
when
several
months now, Pete diving
him up
met
she
dinghy
in the
a
pink pareu.
Kirsty She had been boat-hopping in the western
They had been
Pete.
when
sailing together for
in reef passages, Kirsty picking
the current had swept
him through
into the lagoon.
That night I
we went
had abandoned the and instead thought
been
landfall
me before
a shorter trip, straight
had
felt
adrift.
a
said, 'It gets a bit like that
up
I
I
It
who
was Pete
started the voyage, suggesting
I
make
to the tropics. Occasionally in the past
patronised by the
But
sometimes. You've
too long.' But he looked worried.
at sea
had written to
I
a few hundred miles to go, on a course to nowhere. I said I breakdown at sea. He didn't stop
with only
might have had
I
I
I
sailed for three days
Then he
eating.
When Kirsty left the table New Zealand. explained that
out for a meal.
told Pete about the passage to
way Pete viewed me
as
an innocent
was glad he was in Suva now.
me he planned to fly back to London, and that Kirsty to stay in the islands. He was sailing down to western
Pete told
was going Viti
Levu
in a
few
then he would
him, It
all
the
fly
way
days' time.
There was
out from Nandi.
to
autumn:
it
a
marina
at
Vuda
suggested that
Point,
go with
I
London.
was mid June. The weather in
in the
He
was not too
New Zealand
late to sail
down
is
often settled
south.
But
and needed to get off the boat.
trusted myself at sea now,
I
I
dis-
wanted
to
go home, and had to choose between flying to Auckland, or
to
London.
I
told Pete
I
would
sail
west with him, and
fly to
London.
We
left
Suva
late in
the afternoon and sailed through the
Mbengga Channel as the sun set. I watched Pete's navigation light all that night as we followed the reefs off the south coast of the island. At dawn we motored through a mirror calm, then back inside the barrier reef. Pete
was standing
231
at
the
tiller,
wearing
a
Sailing the Pacific
white
balaclava against the sun. Later
silk
lagoon
Mana
at
we anchored
in the
Island.
That afternoon we went
Most of Pete's underwater photography equipment was home-made. He had built the for a dive.
camera housings from Perspex sheeting cut and glued
in place,
turned down on the lathe in his father s garage in The Perspex domes for each housing were made from spare parts for marine compasses. The arms for the flashguns were
with
a flange
Ipswich.
microphone goosenecks covered
in heat-shrink tube.
When
I
first met Pete seven years before, photography was only a hobby and he supported himself by doing odd jobs, including a stint as a dredger operator. Making his own equipment had been
had
a necessity.
Since then, though, he had started to
make
a
good
He could afford to buy the best equipsome others afloat, still persisted in the castaway mentality, whereby sailors preferred to make things rather than buy them. Robinson Crusoe invented DIY. The fictional
living
from photography.
ment. But Pete,
like
castaway started by fashioning his
made
clothes, shoes, a table
dug
garden for his crops, built
a
and
own
pots and plates, then he
chair. After that a boat,
and
he
built a house,
finally a fortress to
defend his island home. Pete did have one concession to
moder-
Roland EP85 digital piano. He was fond of playing Bach's Toccata and Fugue in D minor on clear nights in the trades, with all the hatches open and moonlight flooding into nity
on
his boat, a
the cabin.
he
filled
The piano was an
our dive bottles using an ancient Briggs and Stratton
compressor he had found in
We
dived on a reef
market'.
exception, though. That afternoon
The
first
a skip
known
and
for
its
rebuilt.
sharks, called the 'Super-
animals appeared before
we
reached the coral
head, two grey reef sharks gliding in from the deeper water to the south.
The
shot he was working
close-up of a shark's mouth. the night before.
We
on
that afternoon
had both caught
He now opened
a
bag of fish
pieces of flesh in the water. Kneeling
232
was
a
fish at twilight
bits
and scattered
on the seabed he threw
a
Miles Hordern
small piece of
meat into the water above
was pre-focused on about
a foot.
When the shark came in to take
the meat he pushed the camera towards
motor-drive. a
The camera
his head.
mouth and
its
hit the
The shot showed the silky white belly of the shark, mouth at centre, backed by sunbursts, breaking
gaping pink
waves and cloud.
Two
days later
I
was waiting for
tube
a
at
Heathrow.
Pete only stayed in the the islands
I
shorelines secure.
Leaving a
it
UK a few weeks. When he returned to
got a fax saying the boat was fine: the bilges dry, the
knew
I
in the water over a cyclone season in the tropics wasn't
very good idea. But over that period easy to put the ocean
it
I
ing
in
from
my
I
spent in
London I found
mind.
arrived in late June and spent the rest of that at a
school in Hendon.
Covent Garden. And
had come Before
it
left
I
London I
went
buy lunch. found
to
to the
Little
a quiet
make
floor of
my
got another job,
now
sailors
the voyage to
sister's flat
at a
school
if the
wheel
New
for a publishing
now I walked past
their
Zealand
company
in
now-defunct Street to
had changed, except that I was older and poorer. corner of the Piazza where
and troupes of acrobatic dwarfs.
reflections
I
same sandwich shop on Bedford
away from the buskers, jugglers, away
on the
was easy to wonder
had worked
Henrietta Street. Each day I
slept set in
summer work-
full circle.
eight years earlier
offices.
I
Town. As winter
in Kentish
I
should be worried about the boat.
I
washed up
fire-eaters,
I
could
and
sit
eat,
Whirling Dervishes
And the stories I had read of cast-
in fabled cities that
appeared
as
strange
of the places from which they had started their jour-
neys didn't seem so entertaining any more. I
enjoyed the cold and dark which seemed to be the only defin-
ing features of the endless winter months.
They were
a
sobering
therapy after the South Seas. Before Christmas Pete paid another
233
Sailing the Pacific
London to
visit to
attend a wildlife photography dinner.
out for a meal in Soho, together with
his
We went
most recent crew. They
were bronzed and bleached, creatures from another world.
my
not been
voyage of self-discovery.
Zealand,
in
When
I
I
has a
thought of the sea now, of those
Reef towards
days of the passage from Beveridge
last
It
experience that single-handed sailing represents
saw the image of a person
New
did not know.
I
At the beginning of February I was offered the use of a cottage Cornwall for a couple of months. I took a train to Truro and
began trying to write an account of the voyage. place to work. There were few distractions
Within only
making, the physical gate,
The
more
I
missed London. There had been the unpredictability of journey-
street violence, scenes
I
had been in England for the same length of
had spent on the boat if
two
these were
in the Pacific.
voyage truly ends.
when
south,
its
I
I
literature
did not
it.
I
I
to say
But
Seas these aspects of
I
a
could turn the water
I
of
my own
the thread of
its
could read
of the South
sailed the waters
past, these strands
its
became bound up with
as
when
thought the history of the
and cartography, were things aside.
know any
one continuous
It is difficult
had once assumed
was finished with
about and then put
I
separate entities, or
voyage of sixteen months' duration.
off
of majesty and
at sea.
By February I
good
roving forces of the great city were the closest thing
here to being
time
a
the piles of rubbish bags at the garden
toil,
sudden eruptions of
history.
was
really
it:
few days
a
something familiar about
It
— none,
vast tapestry,
voyage, to form
a single cloth. I
am still a drifter. The idea that on my own course, made landfalls of my
suspect that even at sea,
the ocean
I
determined
I
own
choosing, was partly an illusion.
rents
around the planet; when they
Flotsam could have
made
I
followed winds and cur-
failed, the passage faltered.
the voyages
I
have made.
of every ship in history were drawn onto
-34
a single
If the tracks
world map,
Miles Hordern
would coincide with
they
found
rents
the diagrams of ocean winds and cur-
European voyaging, and
in Admiralty publications.
the discovery of our planet, has been an organic process in this respect, regulated
human-kind. In
by the global climate
this great
much
as
as
by the
will
swathe of tracks drawn by ships
The
however, there would be one marked exception.
of
at sea,
Pacific
peoples did not follow the forces of nature around the ocean.
The six
Micronesians, Melanesians and Polynesians sailed westward,
thousand miles against the trade winds,
time
at a
ern Europeans were struggling to keep coracles
My voyaging in the periphery. I
went
was drawn
I
Pacific has
unknown
in search of
been
to that place
a
I
journey to the ocean's
where the land and sea meet. uncharted
coastlines,
tional continents, island myths, the vigias exist.
when north-
afloat.
canals, fic-
which may or may not disturbed, and where
went where the water is cloudy and
new homelands
rise
out of the sea to
fill
the map.
I
thought
I
could navigate these waters, but was wrecked on the dangerous shoaling of the lone In Cornwall,
what
I
had
Zealand.
I
started,
made
I
at
of mind.
by making
landfall
on
my home
the decision quickly, with
beginning of April
The marina
sailor's state
decided to return to the Pacific and complete
I
caught
Vuda Point
a flight to
is
no
city in
regrets.
New
At the
Nandi.
a small basin
with concrete
walls,
carved into the land behind the mangroves, with a long channel blasted through the coral out to
dawn and At
first
I
caught
down
to the
I
found everything covered
couldn't immediately identify.
It's
a
at
compound.
glance the decks of the boat looked clean. But
moved about I
a taxi
deep water. The plane landed
in a film
as
I
of something
kind of tropical goo,
a
com-
bination of torrential rain, baking sun, and dust and soot from the cane fields inland, that builds up as these forces alternately
dominate the environment.
235
Sailing the Pacific
I
spent three days working
on the
boat.
The
basin was
airless,
worked pouring with sweat, my white the sun. All the winches needed to be stripped
the humidity intense. skin tingling in
I
and cleaned, the engine cooling was clogged. The had seized almost
When
solid.
self-steering
from the
released the lashings
I
wind generator, it too was gummed motionless. Even the genoa, which had been below-decks, had suffered. Some of the stitching had been so weakened by the trapped heat that it failed as soon as I handled the sail. I sat for several hours on the foredeck re-sewing lengths of seam. Only the anchor windlass was still in working order, having been serviced more recently.
On 7 April
I
caught a bus in to Lautoka to get
arrived back at the marina
the
tiller
gone
was shaking in
a small
put the engine
I
my hand.
In the nine
to vibrate
months
and
had been
I
eco-system of barnacles and weed had grown on
the propeller, reducing I
When
mid morning.
motor out of the berth the boat began
astern to
and
a clearance,
its
efficiency
many times. Even at full revs
was only just able to move the boat through the water. For
moment
considered re-tying the shorelines and going over the
I
side to scrape the propeller clean.
basin and the bugs
New
I
Zealand made
I
me
delay
I
breaking over
my
and
I
on the
head. As
It
no
sails
up
it
put on
I
was not able
it
itself,
but
a sea breeze
flippers, a
The
mask
boat was
dived on the propeller, the
I
up and down dangerously
to
my
remove
just getting
was lying beam-on to the
was moving
to
else.
short seas, white-caps occasionally
was hard to get
was more concerned with in the rig
into
Nandi Water
at fifteen knots.
steering paddle was chopping
water behind me. for long,
marina basin
in the
took a wire brush into the water.
pitching and rolling
filthy
decided to try something
came out of the channel
was blowing cross-shore and snorkel and
But the thought of this
might contract on the eve of the passage
There was no apparent wind
when
a
in the
hands on the propeller
all
the growth. In
fact,
I
back on the boat. With slight sea,
but the wind
slowly through the water. As
236
self-
I
worked
Miles Hordern
on the propeller
When
I
I
also
tried to get
had
to
swim forwards
back over the
rail
I
in order to
keep up.
failed several times,
floundering against the topsides, unable to get
a
proper grip with
my flippered feet, before finally slithering into the cockpit. It was probably the worst piece of seamanship have to my name. I
I
ran with the sea breeze on the quarter that afternoon, south-
west to the islands on the barrier
whole
hull properly,
home
to
New
reef.
Here
and watch the weather.
Zealand
late
I
the following day.
237
I
could clean the
began the passage
Sources
I
have tried to rely on original sources
book titles
J.
has also
as far as possible.
However,
been both inspired and informed by the following
were published
in
London
this (all
unless otherwise specified):
O. Bailey, 'Sources for Poe's Arthur Gordon Pym', in Publication of
M.
Modern Languages Association 57 (1942) (Newton Abbot, David and Charles,
Baker, Tlw Folklore of the Sea 1979)
J.
C. Beaglehole, Hie Exploration of the
Pacific
(Adam and Charles Black,
1966) Tlie Life of
Captain James Cook
(Adam and
Charles Black, 1974)
P.
Bellwood, The Polynesians: Prehistory of an Island People (London,
S.
Berthon
Thames and Hudson,
&
1978)
A. Robinson, The Shape of the World (Guild Publishing,
1 991)
C. Blacker, Ancient Cosmologies (Allen and T. B. Clark,
Omai:The
First Polynesian
Unwin,
Ambassador
to
1975)
London (Honolulu,
University of Hawaii Press, 1969) J.
M. Cohen, The Four Voyages
of Christopher Columbus (Cresset Library,
1988)
D. Cosgrove
(ed.),
B. Danielsson,
G. Daws,
A
Mappings (Reaktion Books, 1999)
Gauguin
in the
South Seas (Allen and
Unwin,
Dream of Islands (New York, Norton, 1980)
239
1965)
Sailing the Pacific
I.
Donaldson from
a
(ed.), 'Australia
conference
at
and the European Imagination' - Papers
the Humanities Research Centre, Australian
National University, 1981 J.
Dunmore,
French Explorers
in the Pacific
(Oxford, Clarendon Press,
1965)
R.
L. Eskridge,
Manga Reva,The
Merrill, 193
D. Fausett,
Forgotten Islands (Indianapolis,
Bobbs-
1)
Writing the
the Great Southern
New
World: Imaginary Voyages and Utopias of
Land (New York, Syracuse University
Press,
1993)
The
Strange, Surprising Sources of Robinson Crusoe
(Amsterdam, Rodopi,
1994)
R. Finney
B.
(ed.), Pacific
Navigation and Voyaging (Wellington,
The
Polynesian Society, 1976) V. Flint,
The Imaginative Landscape of Christopher Columbus
(New Jersey,
Princeton University Press, 1992)
H.
J.
Fry, Alexander
Dalrymple and
the
Expansion of
Commonwealth Society, 1970) Garret, To Live Among the Stars: Christian
British Trade
(Royal
Origins in Oceania (Suva,
University of the South Pacific, 1982)
A. Giamatti, The Earthly Paradise and
the Renaissance Epic
(New
York,
Norton, 1989)
R. Gibson, The Diminishing Australia (Sydney, Sirius P.
Paradise:
Changing Literary Perceptions of
Books, 1984)
B. Gove, The Imaginary Voyage in Prose Fiction (Holland Press, 1961)
M. Green, The
Robinson Crusoe Story (University Park, Pennsylvania
State University Press, 1990)
H. Henningsen,
Crossing the Equator
(Copenhagen, Munskgaard, 1961)
K. Huntress, 'Another Source for Poe's Narrative of Arthur Gordon
Pym',
in American Literature 16 (1944)
Gentner
E. Hutchins, 'Understanding Micronesian Navigation', in
Stevens (eds), Mental Models
(New Jersey,
L.
Erlbaum
&
Associates,
1983)
D. Lewis, The Voyaging Stars (Sydney, William Collins, 1978) J.
Macmillan Brown, The Riddle of the 1979)
240
Pacific
(New
York,
AMS
Press,
)
Miles Hordern
M. McKeithan, 'Two
D.
Pym', in F.
McLynn,
Sources for Poe's Narrative of Arthur
Gordon
University of Texas Bulletin, 13 (1933)
Robert Louis Stevenson (Hutchinson, 1993)
J.
Moore, 'The Geography of
J.
H.
Gulliver's Travels', in Journal of English
and Germanic Philology 40 (1941) Parry,
The Discovery of the Sea (Berkeley, University of California
Press, 198 S.
1
Rogers, Crusoes and Castaways (Harrap and Co., 1932)
M.
Stannard, 'The "South-east Point of
A
Possible Solution to a Textual
of Gulliver's P.
J.
Travels', in Notes
New
Holland"
Problem
as
No-place:
in the Fourth
Voyage
and Queries, September 1996
Whitfield, The Charting of the Oceans (The British Library, 1996)
N. Wilford, The Mapmakers (New York, Knopf, 198 1)
G. Williams
& A.
Frost, Terra Australis to Australia
(Melbourne, Oxford
University Press, 1988)
R.Wiseman,
The
Discovery L.
Spanish
Discovery
of
New
Zealand
(Auckland,
Press, 1996)
Wroth, Early Cartography of the Pacific (Papers of the Bibliographical Society of America vol. 38 No. 2, New York, 1944)
Her
Majesty's Stationery and
UK Hydrographic
Handbook (1979) South America Pilot, volume Mariner's
Pacific Islands Pilot,
volume
III III
(1987) (1982)
Ocean Passages ForThe World (1973)
241
Office, Taunton,
The
Acknowledgements
A
big thank you to
Maggy
Staples for
drawing the maps, and to Pete
Atkinson for supplying the photographs numbered 16,
and
also the jacket
Extracts from the Mariner's Handbook and
volume
Her
III,
are
10,
n,
13, 15
and
photograph. South America
Pilot,
reproduced by kind permission of the Controller of
Majesty's Stationery and
UK Hydrographic
Office.
HORDERN
MILES grew up first
in a landlocked part of England.
ran away to sea aged nineteen, when he
tried to sail a sixteen-foot
His
He
first Pacific
open boat
to Africa.
voyage involved working as a
deckhand-curn-nanny on a fifty-foot Australian ketch sailing between Tahiti and Brisbane.
He now lives on Waiheke where he continues
Jacket design by
Island,
New Zealand,
to sail. This is his first book.
DAVID BALDEOSINGH ROTSTEIN
Jacket photograph oj ship under full sail
© THE MARINERS' MUSEUM/CORBIS Jacket photograph of anchored ship
© HULTON-DEUTSCH COLLECTION CORBIS /
man adjusting sails © KURT HUTTON/GETTY IMAGES
Jacket photograph of
www.stmartins.com
ST. 175
MARTIN'S PRESS
FIFTH AVENUE,
DISTRIBUTED
IN
CANADA BY
NEW YORK, N rI H.B.
1001
FENN AND C ^MPANY, LTD. MER c () '
i
I
I
TO
MAY
1
2003
1-1 83 10407 "2514 3BALTIMORE COUN# IJblIC L^ARy4
S
FOR
Sailing the pacific "Hordern writes vividly about the rhythms and sighs of and about a landscape composed not of immovable objects but of ever-shifting wind and water."
life afloat,
— Daily
Telegraph
"As well as an enthralling adventure, the book chronicles an inner journey of self-discovery. Hordern captures the thrill, romance, and anxieties of ocean sailing. a highly readable book by a gifted new writer. Don't miss it." Yachting magazine .
.
—
"Not unlike Conrad, Hordern demonstrates that a sense of superfluousness often felt by the adventurous modern traveler can be at great personal risk transmuted into a kind of physical essentialism by excluding the rest of humanity and testing oneself, against oneself, in extremis."
—
— Times Literary Supplement "Full of
humor and historical
insight, this
book has the toughness of the
classic survivor. It's the next best thing to actually going yourself."
— Global Adventure
The
poet Derek Walcott wrote, "The sea is history." In the Southern Ocean I found it hard to locate myself in any meaningful concept of the present. It was the past that was often the clearest thing in view.
On
the ocean
I
feel that
I
am
part of history.
I
liken the water to a vast,
unwieldy tapestry wrapped around most of the earth. The tapestry
is
made
up of thousands of separate strands. Some strands are gold thread, some silk, some cotton, some bold and strong, others frayed and tatty. The ocean tapestry has been woven by everyone who has ever been here, but also by those who simply looked and wondered. It is an inclusive cloth. And just a few of those strands are mine, bound up with Greek cosmologers, medieval mapmakers, poets, and whalers. Along the coastline the cloth is thick and heavy, in places stiff with understanding. But on the furthest oceans of the south it is threadbare, sometimes just a few lonely strands and nothing in-between. — from Sailing the Pacific
ISBN
D
312-31061-1 52495>
780312"310813